Книго

 © Frederik Pohl. GateWay (1976, 1977).
 © Фредерик Пол. Врата.
   :
   : 

GrAnD

   Premium: Nebula, 1977, Best Novel: "GateWay"
            Hugo, 1978, Novel: "GateWay"
   Date: 16.07.2002

   My name is Robinette Broadhead, in spite of which I am male. My analyst
(whom  I  call Sigfrid von Shrink, although that isn't his name; he hasn't
got a name, being a machine) has a lot of electronic fun with this fact:
   "Why do you care if some people think it's a girl's name, Rob?"
   "I don't."
   "Then why do you keep bringing it up?"
   He  annoys me when he keeps bringing up what I keep bringing up. I look
at  the  ceiling with its hanging mobiles and pinatas, then I look out the
window.  It isn't really a window. It's a moving holopic of surf coming in
on  Kaena Point; Sigfrid's programming is pretty eclectic. After a while I
say,  "I  can't  help  what  my  parents  called  me.  I tried spelling it
R-O-B-I-N-E-T, but then everybody pronounces it wrong."
   "You could change it to something else, you know."
   "If  I changed it," I say, and I am sure I am right in this, "you would
just  tell  me  I  was  going  to  obsessive  lengths  to  defend my inner
dichotomies."
   "What  I would tell you," Sigfrid says, in his heavy mechanical attempt
at  humor,  "is  that,  please, you shouldn't use technical psychoanalytic
terms. I'd appreciate it if you would just say what you feel."
   "What  I  feel,"  I  say,  for the thousandth time, "is happy. I got no
problems. Why wouldn't I feel happy?"
   We  play these word games a lot, and I don't like them. I think there's
something wrong with his program. He says, "You tell me, Robbie. Why don't
you feel happy?"
   I don't say anything to that. He persists. "I think you're worried."
   "Shit, Sigfrid," I say, feeling a little disgust, "you always say that.
I'm not worried about anything."
   He tries wheedling. "There's nothing wrong with saying how you feel."
   I  look out the window again, angry because I can feel myself trembling
and I don't know why. "You're a pain in the ass, Sigfrid, you know that?"
   He  says something or other, but I am not listening. I am wondering why
I  waste  my  time  coming  here.  If there was anybody ever who had every
reason to be happy, I have to be him. I'm rich. I'm pretty good-looking. I
am not too old, and anyway, I have Full Medical so I can be just about any
age  I  want to be for the next fifty years or so. I live in New York City
under  the Big Bubble, where you can't afford to live unless you're really
well  fixed,  and  maybe  some  kind of celebrity besides. I have a summer
apartment  that  overlooks  the  Tappan Sea and the Palisades Dam. And the
girls  go  crazy  over  my  three  Out  bangles.  You  don't  see too many
prospectors  anywhere  on Earth, not even in New York. They're all wild to
have me tell them what it's really like out around the Orion Nebula or the
Lesser  Magellanic Cloud. (I've never been to either place, of course. The
one really interesting place I've been to I don't like to talk about.)
   "Or,"   says   Sigirid,   having   waited  the  appropriate  number  of
microseconds  for  a  response  to  whatever  it was he said last, "if you
really are happy, why do you come here for help?"
   I  hate  it  when  he  asks me the same questions I ask myself. I don't
answer.  I squirm around until I get comfortable again on the plastic foam
mat,  because I can tell that it's going to be a long, lousy session. If I
knew why I needed help, why would I need help?
   I think you're worried.
   Shit, Sigfrid, you always say that. I'm not worried about anything.
   Why  don't  you tell me about it. There's nothing wrong with saying how
you feel.
   "You're a pain in the ass, Sigfrid, you know that?"
   "Rob,  you  aren't  very  responsive  today,"  Sigfrid says through the
little  loudspeaker  at  the  head  of  the  mat. Sometimes he uses a very
lifelike  dummy,  sitting  in  an  armchair,  tapping a pencil and smiling
quirkily  at  me  from  time to time. But I've told him that that makes me
nervous. "Why don't you just tell me what you're thinking?"
   "I'm not thinking about anything, particularly."
   "Let your mind roam. Say whatever comes into it, Rob."
   "I'm remembering-" I say, and stop.
   "Remembering what, Rob?"
   "Gateway?"
   "That sounds more like a question than a statement."
   "Maybe it is. I can't help that. That's what I'm remembering: Gateway."
   I have every reason to remember Gateway. That's how I got the money and
the  bangles,  and  other  things. I think back to the day I left Gateway.
That  was, let's see, Day 31 of Orbit 22, which means, counting back, just
about  sixteen  years  and  a  couple  of months since I left there. I was
thirty  minutes  out  of the hospital and couldn't wait to collect my pay,
catch my ship, and blow.
   Sigfrid  says  politely,  "Please  say  what  you're thinking out loud,
Robbie."
   "I'm thinking about Shikitei Bakin," I say.
   "Yes,  you've  mentioned  him.  I  remember.  What  about him?" I don't
answer.  Old,  legless Shicky Bakin had the room next to mine, but I don't
want  to  discuss  it  with  Sigfrid. I wriggle around on my circular mat,
thinking about Shicky and trying to cry.
   "You seem upset, Rob."
   I  don't  answer  to  that, either. Shicky was almost the only person I
said good-bye to on Gateway. That was funny. There was a big difference in
our status. I was a prospector, and Shicky was a garbageman. They paid him
enough  money  to  cover his life-support tax because he did odd jobs, and
even  on  Gateway  they have to have somebody to clean up the garbage. But
sooner  or  later  he  would be too old and too sick to be any more use at
all.  Then,  if  he  was  lucky, they would push him out into space and he
would  die. If he wasn't lucky, they'd probably send him back to a planet.
He  would  die  there,  too, before very long; but first he would have the
experience of living for a few weeks or so as a helpless cripple.
   Anyway,  he  was  my  neighbor.  Every  morning  he  would  get  up and
painstakingly vacuum every square inch around his cell. It would be dirty,
because  there  was  so  much  trash floating around Gateway all the time,
despite  the attempts to clean it up. When he had it perfectly clean, even
around  the  roots of the little shrublets he planted and shaped, he would
take  a handful of pebbles, bottle caps, bits of torn paper-the same trash
he'd  just  vacuumed up, half the time-and painstakingly arrange it on the
place  he  had  just cleaned. Funny! I never could see the difference, but
Klara said...Klara said she could.
   "Rob, what were you thinking about just then?" Sigfrid asks.
   I roll up into a fetal ball and mumble something.
   "I couldn't understand what you just said, Robbie."
   I  don't  say  anything.  I  wonder what became of Shicky. I suppose he
died.  Suddenly  I  feel very sad about Shicky dying, such a very long way
from  Nagoya, and I wish again that I could cry. But I can't. I squirm and
wriggle. I flail against the foam mat until the restraining straps squeak.
Nothing  helps.  The  pain and shame won't come out. I feel rather pleased
with  myself  that I am trying so hard to let the feelings out, but I have
to admit I am not being successful, and the dreary interview goes on.
   Sigfrid  says,  "Rob, you're taking a long time to answer. Do you think
you're holding something back?"
   I  say virtuously, "What kind of a question is that? If I am, how would
I  know?"  I  pause  to  survey the inside of my brain, looking in all the
corners  for  padlocks that I can open for Sigfrid. I don't see any. I say
judiciously,  "I don't think that's it, exactly. I don't feel as if I were
blocking. It's more as if there were so many things I wanted to say that I
couldn't decide which."
   "Take any one, Rob. Say the first thing that comes into your mind."
   Now,  that's  dumb,  it  seems  to me. How do I know which is the first
thing,  when  they're  all boiling around in there together? My father? My
mother?  Sylvia?  Klara?  Poor Shicky, trying to balance himself in flight
without  any  legs, flapping around like a barn swallow chasing bugs as he
scoops the cobwebby scraps out of Gateway's air?
   I  reach down into my mind for places where I know it hurts, because it
has hurt there before. The way I felt when I was seven years old, parading
up  and  down  the  Rock Park walk in front of the other kids, begging for
someone  to  pay  attention  to  me?  The  way  it was when we were out of
realspace and knew that we were trapped, with the ghost star coming up out
of  nothingness  below  us  like the smile of a Cheshire cat? Oh, I have a
hundred  memories  like  those, and they all hurt. That is, they can. They
are  pain.  They  are clearly labeled PAINFUL in the index to my memory. I
know  where  to  find  them,  and  I  know  what it feels like to let them
surface.
   But they will not hurt unless I let them out.
   "I'm waiting, Rob," Sigfrid says.
   "I'm  thinking," I say. As I lie there it comes to my mind that I'll be
late for my guitar lesson. That reminds me of something, and I look at the
fingers  of  my  left  hand, checking to see that the fingernails have not
grown  too  long, wishing the calluses were harder and thicker. I have not
learned  to  play  the  guitar  very  well,  but  most people are not that
critical  and  it  gives me pleasure. Only you have to keep practicing and
remembering.  Let's see, I think, how do you make that transition from the
D-maj to the C-7th again?
   "Rob,"  Sigfrid  says,  "this  has  not been a very productive session.
There  are  only about ten or fifteen minutes left. Why don't you just say
the first thing that comes into your mind... now."
   I  reject  the  first  thing  and say the second. "The first thing that
comes  into  my  mind  is  the way my mother was crying when my father was
killed."
   "I  don't  think  that was actually the first thing, Rob. Let me make a
guess. Was the first thing something about Klara?"
   My  chest  fills,  tingling. My breath catches. All of a sudden there's
Klara  rising  up  before  me,  sixteen  years earlier and not yet an hour
older....  I  say,  "As  a matter of fact, Sigfrid, I think what I want to
talk about is my mother." I allow myself a polite, deprecatory chuckle.
   Sigfrid doesn't ever sigh in resignation, but he can be silent in a way
that sounds about the same.
   "You  see,"  I go on, carefully outlining all the relevant issues, "she
wanted  to get married again after my father died. Not right away. I don't
mean  that  she  was  glad about his death, or anything like that. No, she
loved  him,  all  right.  But  still,  I  see now, she was a healthy young
woman-well, fairly young. Let's see, I suppose she was about thirty-three.
And  if  it  hadn't  been for me I'm sure she would have remarried. I have
feelings  of guilt about that. I kept her from doing it. I went to her and
said, 'Ma, you don't need another man. I'll be the man in the family. I'll
take care of you.' Only I couldn't, of course. I was only about five years
old."
   "I think you were nine, Robbie."
   "Was  I?  Let me think. Gee, Sigfrid, I guess you're right-" And then I
try  to swallow a big drop of spit that has somehow instantly formed in my
throat and I gag and cough.
   "Say it, Rob!" Sigfrid says insistently. "What do you want to say?"
   "God damn you, Sigfrid!"
   "Go ahead, Rob. Say it."
   "Say  what?  Christ, Sigfrid! You're driving me right up the wall! This
shit isn't doing either one of us any good!"
   "Say what's bothering you, Rob, please."
   "Shut  your  flicking  tin  mouth!"  All that carefully covered pain is
pushing its way out and I can't stand it, can't deal with it.
   "I suggest, Rob, that you try-"
   I  surge  against  the  straps, kicking chunks out of the foam matting,
roaring,  "Shut  up,  you!  I  don't want to hear. I can't cope with this,
don't you understand me? I can't! Can't cope, can't cope!"
   Sigfrid  waits  patiently  for me to stop weeping, which happens rather
suddenly.  And then, before he can say anything, I say wearily, "Oh, hell,
Sigfrid,  this  whole  thing  isn't getting us anywhere. I think we should
call it off. There must be other people who need your services more than I
do."
   "As  to  that,  Rob,"  he  says,  "I am quite competent to meet all the
demands on my time."
   I am drying my tears on the paper towels he has left beside the mat and
don't answer.
   "There is still excess capacity, in fact," he goes on. "But you must be
the judge of whether we continue with these sessions or not."
   "Have you got anything to drink in the recovery room?" I ask him.
   "Not  in  the  sense  you  mean,  no. There is what I am told is a very
pleasant bar on the top floor of this building."
   "Well," I say, "I just wonder what I'm doing here."
   And,  fifteen  minutes  later,  having confirmed my appointment for the
next  week,  I  am  drinking a cup of tea in Sigfrid's recovery cubicle. I
listen  to hear if his next patient has started screaming yet, but I can't
hear anything.
   So  I  wash my face, adjust my scarf, and slick down the little cowlick
in  my  hair.  I  go up to the bar for a quick one. The headwaiter, who is
human,  knows  me,  and gives me a seat looking south toward the Lower Bay
rim  of the bubble. He looks toward a tall, copper-skinned girl with green
eyes  sitting  by  herself,  but I shake my head. I drink one short drink,
admire  the  legs  on  the  copper-skinned girl and, thinking mostly about
where  I  am  going  to  go  for dinner, keep my appointment for my guitar
lesson.

   All my life I wanted to be a prospector, as far back as I can remember.
I  couldn't have been more than six when my father and mother took me to a
fair  in  Cheyenne.  Hot  dogs  and  popped  soya,  colored-paper hydrogen
balloons,  a circus with dogs and horses, wheels of fortune, games, rides.
And  there  was a pressure tent with opaque sides, a dollar to get in, and
inside somebody had arranged a display of imports from the Heechee tunnels
on Venus. Prayer fans and fire pearls, real Heechee-metal mirrors that you
could  buy  for twenty-five dollars apiece. Pa said they weren't real, but
to  me  they  were  real.  We  couldn't afford twenty-five dollars apiece,
though. And when you came right down to it, I didn't really need a mirror.
Freckled face, buck teeth, hair I brushed straight back and tied. They had
just  found  Gateway.  I  heard my father talking about it going home that
night  in  the  airbus,  when  I  guess they thought I was asleep, and the
wistful hunger in his voice kept me awake.
   If it hadn't been for my mother and me he might have found a way to go.
But  he  never  got  the chance. He was dead a year later. All I inherited
from him was his job, as soon as I was big enough to hold it.
   |                 The Heechee Hut
   |      Direct from the Lost Tunnels of Venus!
   |              Rare Religious Objects
   |   Priceless Gems Once Worn by the Secret Race
   |        Astounding Scientific Discoveries
   |         EVERY ITEM GUARANTEED AUTHENTIC!
   |               Special Discount for
   |         Scientific Parties and Students
   |             THESE FANTASTIC OBJECTS
   |             ARE OLDER THAN HUMANITY!
   |     Now for the first time at popular prices
   |                  Adults, $2. 50
   |                 Children, $1. 00
   |     Delbert Guyne, Ph. D., D. D., Proprietor
   I  don't  know  if  you've  ever  worked  in the food mines, but you've
probably  heard  about  them.  There isn't any great joy there. I started,
half-time  and  half-pay,  at  twelve.  By the time I was sixteen I had my
father's rating: charge driller-good pay, hard work.
   But  what can you do with the pay? It isn't enough for Full Medical. It
isn't enough even to get you out of the mines, only enough to be a sort of
local success story. You work six hours on and ten hours off. Eight hours'
sleep  and  you're  on  again, with your clothes stinking of shale all the
time.  You  can't  smoke,  except  in  sealed  rooms.  The oil fog settles
everywhere. The girls are as smelly and slick and frazzled as you are.
   So  we all did the same things, we worked and chased each other's women
and  played  the  lottery.  And we drank a lot, the cheap, powerful liquor
that  was  made  not  ten  miles away. Sometimes it was labeled Scotch and
sometimes  vodka  or  bourbon,  but  it  all came off the same slime-still
columns.  I  was  no  different from any of the others... except that, one
time, I won the lottery. And that was my ticket out.
   Before that happened I just lived.
   My  mother  was  a  miner, too. After my father was killed in the shaft
fire  she brought me up, with the help of the company creche. We got along
all  right until I had my psychotic episode. I was twenty-six at the time.
I  had some trouble with my girl, and then for a while I just couldn't get
out  of  bed in the morning. So they put me away. I was out of circulation
for  most of a year, and when they let me out of the shrink tank my mother
had died.
   Face it: that was my fault. I don't mean I planned it, I mean she would
have  lived if she hadn't had me to worry about. There wasn't enough money
to  pay  the  medical expenses for both of us. I needed psychotherapy. She
needed a new lung. She didn't get it, so she died.
   I  hated living on in the same apartment after she was dead, but it was
either that or go into bachelor quarters. I didn't like the idea of living
in  such  close  proximity  to a lot of men. Of course I could have gotten
married. I didn't-Sylvia, the girl I'd had the trouble with, was long gone
by  that  time-but  it  wasn't  because I had anything against the idea of
marriage. Maybe you might think I did, considering my psychiatric history,
and  also  considering  that  I'd  lived with my mother as long as she was
alive.  But it isn't true. I liked girls very much. I would have been very
happy to marry one and raise a child.
   But not in the mines.
   I didn't want to leave a son of mine the way my father had left me.
   Charge  drilling  is  bitchy hard work. Now they use steam torches with
Heechee  heating  coils  and  the  shale  just  politely splits away, like
carving  cubes of wax. But then we drilled and blasted. You'd go down into
the  shaft  on  the  high-speed drop at the start of your shift. The shaft
wall was slimy and stinking ten inches from your shoulder, moving at sixty
kilometers  an hour relative to you; I've seen miners with a few drinks in
them  stagger and stretch out a hand to support themselves and pull back a
stump.  Then  you  pile  out  of  the  bucket  and slip and stumble on the
duckboards  for a kilometer or more till you come to the working face. You
drill  your  shaft.  You  set  your  charges.  Then  you  back  out into a
cul-de-sac  while  they  blast,  hoping you figured it right and the whole
reeking,  oily  mass doesn't come down on you. (If you're buried alive you
can live up to a week in the loose shale. People have. When they don't get
rescued  until  after  the  third  day  they're usually never any good for
anything  anymore.)  Then, if everything has gone all right, you dodge the
handling  loaders as they come creeping in on their tracks, on your way to
the next face.
   The  masks,  they  say,  take out most of the hydrocarbons and the rock
dust.  They  don't  take out the stink. I'm not sure they take out all the
hydrocarbons,  either. My mother is not the only miner I knew who needed a
new lung-nor the only one who couldn't pay for one, either.
   And then, when your shift is over, where is there to go?
   You  go  to  a  bar.  You  go  to  a dorm-room with a girl. You go to a
rec-room to play cards. You watch TV.
   You  don't go outdoors very much. There's no reason. There are a couple
of  little parks, carefully tended, planted, replanted; Rock Park even has
hedges  and  a  lawn.  I  bet  you never saw a lawn that had to be washed,
scrubbed  (with detergent!), and air-dried every week, or it would die. So
we mostly leave the parks to the kids.
   Apart  from the parks, there is only the surface of Wyoming, and as far
as  you  can  see  it  looks  like  the surface of the Moon. Nothing green
anywhere.  Nothing  alive.  no birds, no squirrels, no pets. A few sludgy,
squidgy  creeks that for some reason are always bright ochre-red under the
oil.  They  tell  us that we're lucky at that, because our part of Wyoming
was  shaft-mined.  In  Colorado,  where they strip-mined, things were even
worse.
   I  always found that hard to believe, and still do, but I've never gone
to look.
   And  apart  from everything else, there's the smell and sight and sound
of  the  work.  The  sunsets  orangey-brown through the haze. The constant
smell.  All  day and all night there's the roar of the extractor furnaces,
heating  and  grinding the marlstone to get the kerogen out of it, and the
rumble  of  the long-line conveyors, dragging the spent shale away to pile
it somewhere.
   See,  you have to heat the rock to extract the oil. When you heat it it
expands, like popcorn. So there's no place to put it. You can't squeeze it
back into the shaft you've taken it out of; there's too much of it. If you
dig  out  a mountain of shale and extract the oil, the popped shale that's
left is enough to make two mountains. So that's what you do. You build new
mountains.
   And  the  runoff  heat from the extractors warms the culture sheds, and
the  oil  grows  its  slime  as  it  trickles  through  the  shed, and the
slime-skimmers scoop it off and dry it and press it and we eat it, or some
of it, for breakfast the next morning.
   Funny.  In the old days oil used to bubble right out of the ground! And
all  people  thought  to  do with it was stick it in their automobiles and
burn it up.
   All  the  TV  shows  have  morale-builder  commercials  telling  us how
important  our  work  is, how the whole world depends on us for food. It's
all true. They don't have to keep reminding us. If we didn't do what we do
there would be hunger in Texas and kwashiorkor among the babies in Oregon.
We  all  know  that.  We  contribute  five  trillion calories a day to the
world's  diet,  half  the  protein  ration for about a fifth of the global
population.  It  all  comes out of the yeasts and bacteria we grow off the
Wyoming  shale oil, along with parts of Utah and Colorado. The world needs
that  food. But so far it has cost us most of Wyoming, half of Appalachia,
a  big chunk of the Athabasca tar sands region... and what are we going to
do with all those people when the last drop of hydrocarbon is converted to
yeast?
   It's not my problem, but I still think of it.
   It  stopped  being  my  problem  when  I won the lottery, the day after
Christmas, the year I turned twenty-six.
   The  prize  was  two hundred and fifty thousand dollars. Enough to live
like  a king for a year. Enough to marry and keep a family on, provided we
both worked and didn't live too high.
   Or enough for a one-way ticket to Gateway.
   I  took  the  lottery ticket down to the travel office and turned it in
for  passage.  They were glad to see me; they didn't do much of a business
there,  especially  in  that  kind  of commodity. I had about ten thousand
dollars  left  over in change, give or take a little. I didn't count it. I
bought  drinks  for  my  whole shift as far as it would go. With the fifty
people in my shift, and all the friends and casual drop-ins who leeched on
to the party, it went about twentyfour hours.
   Then  I staggered through a Wyoming blizzard back to the travel office.
Five  months later, I was circling in toward the asteroid, staring out the
portholes  at  the Brazilian cruiser that was challenging us, on my way to
being a prospector at last.

   Sigfrid  never closes off a subject. He never says, "Well, Rob, I guess
we've  talked enough about that." But sometimes when I've been lying there
on  the  mat for a long time, not responding much, making jokes or humming
through my nose, after a while he'll say:
   "I think we might go back to a different area, Rob. There was something
you  said  some  time  ago  that we might follow up. Can you remember that
time, the last time you:"
   "The last time I talked to Klara, right?"
   "Yes, Rob."
   "Sigfrid, I always know what you're going to say."
   "Doesn't  matter  if  you  do,  Rob. What about it? Do you want to talk
about how you felt that time?"
   "Why  not?"  I  clean  the nail of my right middle finger by drawing it
between  my  two  lower front teeth. I inspect it and say, "I realize that
was  an  important  time. Maybe it was the worst moment of my life, about.
Even  worse  than  when  Sylvia  ditched me, or when I found out my mother
died."
   "Are you saying you'd rather talk about one of those things, Rob?"
   "Not at all. You say talk about Klara, we'll talk about Klara."
   And  I  settle  myself on the foam mat and think for a while. I've been
very  interested  in  transcendental  insight,  and sometimes when I set a
problem  to  my  mind and just start saying my mantra over and over I come
out  of  it  with the problem solved: Sell the fish-farm stock in Baja and
buy  plumbing  supplies  on the commodities exchange. That was one, and it
really  paid  out. Or: Take Rachel to Merida for waterskling on the Bay of
Campeche.  That  got  her  into  my  bed  the  first  time, when I'd tried
everything else.
   And then Sigfrid says, "You're not responding, Rob."
   "I'm thinking about what you said."
   "Please  don't  think  about  it,  Rob.  Just talk. Tell me what you're
feeling about Klara right now."
   I  try  to  think it out honestly. Sigfrid won't let me get into TI for
it, so I look inside my mind for suppressed feelings.
   "Well, not much," I say. Not much on the surface, anyway.
   "Do you remember the feeling at the time, Rob?"
   "Of course I do."
   "Try to feel what you felt then, Rob."
   "All right." Obediently I reconstruct the situation in my mind. There I
am,  talking  to  Klara  on  the  radio. Dane is shouting something in the
lander.  We're all frightened out of our wits. Down underneath us the blue
mist  is  opening  up, and I see the dim skeletal star for the first time.
The  Three-ship-no,  it  was  a  Five..  Anyway,  it  stinks  of vomit and
perspiration. My body aches.
   I  can  remember  it exactly, although I would be lying if I said I was
letting myself feel it.
   I  say  lightly, half chuckling, "Sigfrid, there's an intensity of pain
and guilt and misery there that I just can't handle." Sometimes I try that
with  him, saying a kind of painful truth in the tone you might use to ask
the  waiter  at a cocktail party to bring you another rum punch. I do that
when  I  want  to divert his attack. I don't think it works. Sigfrid has a
lot of Heechee circuits in him. He's a lot better than the machines at the
Institute  were,  when  I  had my episode. He continuously monitors all my
physical  parameters:  skin  conductivity and pulse and beta-wave activity
and  so  on.  He gets readings from the restraining straps that hold me on
the mat, to show how violently I fling myself around. He meters the volume
of  my  voice  and  spectrum-scans  the  print  for overtones. And he also
understands  what  the words mean. Sigfrid is extremely smart, considering
how stupid he is.
   It  is very hard, sometimes, to fool him. I get to the end of a session
absolutely  limp,  with  the feeling that if I had stayed with him for one
more  minute  I  would have found myself falling right down into that pain
and it would have destroyed me.
   Or cured me. Perhaps they are the same thing.
   I don't know why I keep coming back to you, Sigfrid.
   I  remind you, Robby, you've already used up three stomachs and, let me
see, nearly five meters of intestine.
   Ulcers, cancer.
   Something appears to be eating away at you, Rob.

   So  there  was  Gateway,  getting bigger and bigger in the ports of the
ship up from Earth:
   An  asteroid.  Or  perhaps the nucleus of a comet. About ten kilometers
through,  the  longest  way.  Pear-shaped.  On the outside it looks like a
lumpy  charred blob with glints of blue. On the inside it's the gateway to
the universe.
   Sheri  Loffat leaned against my shoulder, with the rest of our bunch of
would-be  prospectors  clustered  behind us, staring. "Jesus, Rob. Look at
the cruisers!"
   "They  find anything wrong," said somebody behind us, "and they blow us
out of space."
   "They  won't find anything wrong," said Sheri, but she ended her remark
with  a  question  mark.  Those  cruisers  looked mean, circling jealously
around  the asteroid, watching to see that whoever comes in isn't going to
steal the secrets that are worth more than anyone could ever pay.
   We hung to the porthole braces to rubberneck at them. Foolishness, that
was.  We  could have been killed. There wasn't really much likelihood that
our ship's matching orbit with Gateway or the Brazilian cruiser would take
much  delta-V,  but  there  only  had to be one quick course correction to
spatter  us.  And  there  was  always the other possibility, that our ship
would  rotate a quarterturn or so and we'd suddenly find ourselves staring
into  the  naked, nearby sun. That meant blindness for always, that close.
But we wanted to see.
   The Brazilian cruiser didn't bother to lock on. We saw flashes back and
forth,  and  knew that they were checking our manifests by laser. That was
normal.  I  said the cruisers were watching for thieves, but actually they
were  more to watch each other than to worry about anybody else. Including
us.  The  Russians  were  suspicious  of  the  Chinese,  the  Chinese were
suspicious  of  the  Russians,  the  Brazilians  were  suspicious  of  the
Venusians. They were all suspicious of the Americans.
   So  the  other  four  cruisers were surely watching the Brazilians more
closely  than  they  were  watching  us. But we all knew that if our coded
navicerts  had  not matched the patterns their five separate consulates at
the  departure  port on Earth had filed, the next step would not have been
an argument. It would have been a torpedo.
   It's funny. I could imagine that torpedo. I could imagine the cold-eyed
warrior who would aim and launch it, and how our ship would blossom into a
flare  of  orange  light  and  we  would  all  become dissociated atoms in
orbit....  Only  the torpedoman on that ship, I'm pretty sure, was at that
time  an  armorer's  mate  named  Francy Hereira. We got to be pretty good
buddies  later  on. He wasn't what you'd really call a cold-eyed killer. I
cried  in his arms all the day after I got back from that last trip, in my
hospital room, when he was supposed to be searching me for contraband. And
Francy cried with me.
   The  cruiser  moved  away  and  we  all  surged gently out, then pulled
ourselves back to the window with the grips, as our ship began to close in
on Gateway.
   "Looks like a case of smallpox," said somebody in the group.
   It  did; and some of the pockmarks were open. Those were the berths for
ships  that  were  out  on  mission. Some of them would stay open forever,
because  the  ships  wouldn't  be  coming back. But most of the pocks were
covered with bulges that looked like mushroom caps.
   Those caps were the ships themselves, what Gateway was all about.
   The ships weren't easy to see. Neither was Gateway itself. It had a low
albedo  to  begin  with,  and  it  wasn't  very  big:  as I say, about ten
kilometers  on  the  long axis, half that through its equator of rotation.
But  it  could have been detected. After that first tunnel rat led them to
it,  astronomers  began  asking  each  other  why it hadn't been spotted a
century  earlier.  Now  that  they  know  where  to look, they find it. It
sometimes  gets  as  bright  as seventeenth magnitude, as seen from Earth.
That's  easy.  You  would  have  thought it would have been picked up in a
routine mapping program.
   The  thing is, there weren't that many routine mapping programs in that
direction,  and  it seems Gateway wasn't where they were looking when they
looked.
   Stellar  astronomy  usually  pointed away from the sun. Solar astronomy
usually  stayed in the plane of the ecliptic-and Gateway has a right-angle
orbit. So it fell through the cracks.
   The  piezophone  clucked  and said, "Docking in five minutes. Return to
your bunks. Fasten webbing."
   We were almost there.
   Sheri  Loffat  reached  out  and  held  my  hand through the webbing. I
squeezed  back.  We  had  never  been to bed together, never met until she
turned  up  in  the bunk next to mine on the ship, but the vibrations were
practically  sexual.  As  though  we were about to make it in the biggest,
best way there ever could be; but it wasn't sex, it was Gateway.
   When  men  began  to  poke  around  the surface of Venus they found the
Heechee diggings.
   They didn't find any Heechees. Whoever the Heechees were, whenever they
had  been  on  Venus, they were gone. Not even a body was left in a burial
pit  to exhume and cut apart. All there was, was the tunnels, the caverns,
the  few  piddling  little artifacts, the technological wonders that human
beings puzzled over and tried to reconstruct.
   Then  somebody  found  a  Heechee  map of the solar system. Jupiter was
there  with its moons, and Mars, and the outer planets, and the Earth-Moon
pair.  And Venus, which was marked in black on the shining blue surface of
the  Heechee-metal  map.  And Mercury, and one other thing, the only other
thing  marked in black besides Venus: an orbital body that came inside the
perihelion  of  Mercury  and  outside  the  orbit  of Venus, tipped ninety
degrees  out of the plane of the ecliptic so that it never came very close
to  either.  A  body  which  had  never  been  identified  by  terrestrial
astronomers.  Conjecture:  an asteroid, or a comet-the difference was only
semantic-which the Heechees had cared about specially for some reason.
   |      (Transcript  of  Q. & A., Professor Hegramet's
   |  lecture.)
   |      Q. What did the Heechee look like?
   |      Professor  Hegramet: Nobody knows. We've never
   |  found  anything  resembling  a  photograph,  or  a
   |  drawing, except for two or three maps. Or a book.
   |      Q.  Didn't  they  have  some system of storing
   |  knowledge, like writing?
   |      Professor  Hegramet: Well, of course they must
   |  have.  But  what  it  is,  I  don't know. I have a
   |  suspicion... well, it's only a guess.
   |      Q. What?
   |      Professor  Hegramet: Well, think about our own
   |  storage  methods  and  how  they  would  have been
   |  received in pretechnological times. If we'd given,
   |  say, Euclid a book, he could have figured out what
   |  it was, even if he couldn't understand what it was
   |  saying.   But  what  if  we'd  given  him  a  tape
   |  cassette?  He  wouldn't have known what to do with
   |  it.  I have a suspicion, no, a conviction, that we
   |  have some Heechee "books" we just don't recognize.
   |  A bar of Heechee metal. Maybe that Q-spiral in the
   |  ships, the function of which we don't know at all.
   |  This isn't a new idea. They've all been tested for
   |  magnetic  codes,  for  microgrooves,  for chemical
   |  patterns-nothing has shown up. But we may not have
   |  the instrument we need to detect the messages.
   |      Q.  There's something about the Heechee that I
   |  just  don't  understand.  Why  did  they leave all
   |  these tunnels and places? Where did they go?
   |      Professor  Hegramet:  Young lady, it beats the
   |  piss out of me.
   Probably sooner or later a telescopic probe would have followed up that
clue,  but  it  wasn't  necessary.  Then  The Famous Sylvester Macklen-who
wasn't  up  to  that point the famous anything, just another tunnel rat on
Venus-found a Heechee ship and got himself to Gateway, and died there. But
he  managed  to  let  people  know where he was by cleverly blowing up his
ship.  So  a NASA probe was diverted from the chromosphere of the sun, and
Gateway was reached and opened up by man.
   Inside were the stars.
   Inside,  to  be  less  poetic  and more literal, were nearly a thousand
smallish  spacecraft,  shaped  something  like fat mushrooms. They came in
several  shapes  and sizes. The littlest ones were button-topped, like the
mushrooms they grow in the Wyoming tunnels after they've dug all the shale
out,  and  you  buy  in the supermarket. The bigger ones were pointy, like
morels.  Inside the caps of the mushrooms were living quarters and a power
source  that no one understood. The stems were chemical rocket ships, kind
of like the old Moon Landers of the first space programs.
   No  one had ever figured out how the caps were driven, or how to direct
them.
   That  was  one of the things that made us all nervous: the fact that we
were  going  to  take  our  chances  with something nobody understood. You
literally  had  no  control, once you started out in a Heechee ship. Their
courses  were  built  into their guidance system, in a way that nobody had
figured  out;  you  could pick one course, but once picked that was it-and
you  didn't  know  where  it was going to take you when you picked it, any
more than you know what's in your box of Cracker-Joy until you open it.
   But they worked. They still worked, after what they say is maybe half a
million years.
   The  first  guy who had the guts to get into one and try to start it up
succeeded.  It lifted out of its crater on the surface of the asteroid. It
turned fuzzy and bright, and was gone.
   And  three months later, it was back, with a starved, staring astronaut
inside,  aglow with triumph. He had been to another star! He had orbited a
great  gray planet with swirling yellow clouds, had managed to reverse the
controls-and  had  been  brought  back  to  the very same pockmark, by the
built-in guidance controls.
   So  they  sent  out  another  ship,  this  time  one of the big, pointy
morel-shaped  ones,  with  a  crew  of  four  and  plenty  of  rations and
instrumentation.  They  were gone only about fifty days. In that time they
had  not  just  reached  another  solar system, they had actually used the
lander to go down to the surface of a planet. There wasn't anything living
there... but there had been.
   They found the remnants. Not a lot. A few beat-up pieces of trash, on a
corner  of  a mountaintop that had missed the general destruction that had
hit  the planet. Out of the radioactive dust they had picked up a brick, a
ceramic bolt, a half-melted thing that looked as though it had once been a
chromium flute.
   Then the star rush began... and we were part of it.

   Sigfrid  is  a  pretty  smart machine, but sometimes I can't figure out
what's  wrong  with him. He's always asking me to tell him my dreams. Then
sometimes  I  come in all aglow with some dream I'm positive he's going to
love, a big-red-apple-for-the-teacher kind of dream, full of penis symbols
and  fetishism  and guilt hang-ups, and he disappoints me. He takes off on
some  crazy  track  that  has nothing at all to do with it. I tell him the
whole  thing,  and  then  he  sits  and  clicks and whirs and buzzes for a
while-he  doesn't  really, but I fantasize that while I'm waiting-and then
he says:
   "Let's  go  back to something different, Rob. I'm interested in some of
the things you've said about the woman, Gelle-Klara Moynlin."
   I say, "Sigfrid, you're off on a wild-goose chase again."
   "I don't think so, Rob."
   "But  that dream! My God, don't you see how important it is? What about
the mother figure in it?"
   "What about letting me do my job, Rob?"
   "Do I have a choice?" I say, feeling sulky.
   "You  always have a choice, Rob, but I would like very much to quote to
you something you said a while ago." And he stops, and I hear my own voice
coming out of somewhere in his tapes. I am saying:
   "Sigfrid,  there's an intensity of pain and guilt and misery there that
I just can't handle."
   He waits for me to say something.
   After a moment I do. "That's a nice recording," I acknowledge, "but I'd
rather talk about the way my mother fixation comes out in my dream."
   "I think it would be more productive to explore this other matter, Rob.
It is possible they're related."
   "Really?" I am all warmed up to discuss this theoretical possibility in
a detached and philosophical way, but he beats me to the punch:
   "The last conversation you had with Klara, Rob. Please tell me what you
feel about it."
   "I've  told  you." I am not enjoying this at all, it is such a waste of
time,  and  I  make  sure  he  knows  it  by  the tone of my voice and the
tenseness  of  my  body against the restraining straps. "It was even worse
than with my mother."
   "I  know  you'd  rather  switch  to talking about your mother, Rob, but
please  don't, right now. Tell me about that time with Klara. What are you
feeling about it at this minute?"
   I  try to think it out honestly. After all, I can do that much. I don't
actually have to say it. But all I can find to say is, "Not much."
   After a little wait he says, "Is that all, 'not much'?"
   "That's  it.  Not much." Not much on the surface, anyway. I do remember
how  I was feeling at the time. I open up that memory, very cautiously, to
see what it was like. Going down into that blue mist. Seeing the dim ghost
star  for  the  first  time.  Talking to Klara on the radio, while Dane is
whispering in my ear.... I close it up again.
   "It all hurts, a lot, Sigfrid," I say conversationally. Sometimes I try
to  fool him by saying emotionally loaded things in the tone you might use
to  order  a cup of coffee, but I don't think it works. Sigfrid listens to
volume and overtones, but he also listens to breathing and pauses, as well
as  the  sense of the words. He is extremely smart, considering how stupid
he is.

   Five  permanent-party noncoms, one from each of the cruisers, patted us
down, checked our IDs and turned us over to a Corporation screening clerk.
Sheri  giggled  when the Russian's pat hit a sensitive spot and whispered,
"What do they think we're smuggling in, Rob?"
   I  shushed  her. The Corporation woman had taken our landing cards from
the  Chinese Spec/3 in charge of the detail and was calling out our names.
There  were  eight of us altogether. "Welcome aboard," she said. "Each one
of  you  fish  will  get  a  proctor  assigned  to you. He'll help you get
straightened out with a place to live, answer your questions, let you know
where  to  report for the medical and your classes. Also, he'll give you a
copy  of  the  contract  to sign. You've each had eleven hundred and fifty
dollars  deducted from your cash on deposit with the ship that brought you
here;  that's  your  life-support tax for the first ten days. The rest you
can draw on any time by writing a P-check. Your proctor will show you how.
Linscott!"
   The  middle-aged  black man from Baja California raised his hand. "Your
proctor is Shota Tarasvili. Broadhead!"
   "Here I am."
   "Dane Metchnikov," said the Corporation clerk.
   I  started to look around, but the person who had to be Dane Metchnikov
was  already coming toward me. He took my arm very firmly, started to lead
me away and then said, "Hi."
   I held back. "I'd like to say good-bye to my friend-"
   "You're all in the same area," he grunted. "Come on."
   So within two hours of arriving on Gateway I had a room, a proctor, and
a  contract.  I signed the articles of agreement right away. I didn't even
read  them. Metchnikov looked surprised. "Don't you want to know what they
say?"
   "Not  right  this  minute." I mean, what was the advantage? If I hadn't
liked what they said, I might have changed my mind, and what other options
did I have, really? Being a prospector is pretty scary. I hate the idea of
being  killed.  I  hate  the  idea  of dying at all, ever; not being alive
anymore, having everything stop, knowing that all those other people would
go  on  living  and having sex and joy without me being there to share it.
But I didn't hate it as much as I hated the idea of going back to the food
mines.
   Metchnikov hung himself by his collar to a hook on the wall of my room,
to  be out of the way while I put away my belongings. He was a squat, pale
man,  not  very talkative. He didn't seem to be a very likable person, but
at least he didn't laugh at me because I was a clumsy new fish. Gateway is
about  as  close to zero-G as you get. I had never experienced low-gravity
before;  you don't get much of it in Wyoming, so I kept misjudging. When I
said  something,  Metchnikov  said, "You'll get used to it. Have you got a
toke?"
   "Afraid not."
   He sighed, looking a little like somebody's Buddha hung up on the wall,
with his legs pulled up.
   He  looked  at  his  time dial and said, "I'll take you out for a drink
later.  It's  a  custom.  Only  it's  not  very  interesting  until  about
twenty-two  hundred.  The  Blue  Hell'll  be full of people then, and I'll
introduce  you around. See what you can find. What are you, straight, gay,
what?"
   "I'm pretty straight."
   "Whatever. You're on your own about that, though. I'll introduce you to
whoever  I  know, but then you're on your own. You better get used to that
right away. Have you got your map?"
   "Map?"
   |      MEMORANDUM OF AGREEMENT
   |      1,  being  of  sound  mind,  hereby assign all
   |  rights  in  and  to  any  discoveries,  artifacts,
   |  objects,  and things of value of any description I
   |  may  find  during  or  as  a result of exploration
   |  involving  any  craft  furnished me or information
   |  given  me  by the Gateway Authority irrevocably to
   |  said Gateway Authority.
   |      2.  Gateway  Authority  may,  in  its own sole
   |  direction,  elect  to  sell,  lease  or  otherwise
   |  dispose  of any artifact, object or other thing of
   |  value   arising  from  my  activities  under  this
   |  contract. If it does so, it agrees to assign to me
   |  50%  (fifty  percent) of all revenues arising from
   |  such  sale, lease, or disposal, up to the costs of
   |  the  exploration  trip  itself  (including  my own
   |  costs in coming to Gateway and my subsequent costs
   |  of  living  while there), and 10% (ten percent) of
   |  all  subsequent  revenues once the aforesaid costs
   |  have  been  repaid.  I  accept  this assignment as
   |  payment  in full for any obligations arising to me
   |  from  the  Gateway Authority of whatever kind, and
   |  specifically  undertake  not  to lay any claim for
   |  additional payment for any reason at any time.
   |      3.  I  irrevocably  grant to Gateway Authority
   |  the  full power and authority to make decisions of
   |  all  kinds  relating to the exploitation, sale, or
   |  lease of rights in any such discoveries, including
   |  the right, at Gateway Authority's sole discretion,
   |  to  pool  my  discoveries or other things of value
   |  arising  under  this contract with those of others
   |  for  purpose  of  exploitation, lease, or sale, in
   |  which  case  my share shall be whatever proportion
   |  of   such  earnings  Gateway  Authority  may  deem
   |  proper;  and  I further grant to Gateway Authority
   |  the  right  to  refrain from exploiting any or all
   |  such discoveries or things of value in any way, at
   |  its own sole discretion.
   |      4.  I  release  Gateway Authority from any and
   |  all  claims by me or on my behalf arising from any
   |  injury,  accident,  or  loss  of any kind to me in
   |  connection with my activities under this contract.
   |      5.  In  the  event of any disagreement arising
   |  from  this  Memorandum  of Agreement, I agree that
   |  the  terms  shall  be interpreted according to the
   |  laws and precedents of Gateway itself, and that no
   |  laws or precedents of any other jurisdiction shall
   |  be considered relevant in any degree.
   "Oh, hell, man! It's in that packet of stuff they gave you."
   I  opened  the  lockers  at  random  until  I found where I had put the
envelope.  Inside  it were my copy of the articles of agreement, a booklet
entitled  Welcome  to Gateway, my room assignment, my health questionnaire
that I would have to fill out before 0800 the next morning... and a folded
sheet that, opened up, looked like a wiring diagram with names on it.
   "That's  it.  Can  you locate where you are? Remember your room number:
Level Babe, Quadrant East, Tunnel Eight, Room Fifty-one. Write it down."
   "It's already written here, Dane, on my room assignment."
   "Well,  don't  lose  it."  Dane  reached  behind  his neck and unhooked
himself,  let  himself  fall  gently  to the floor. "So why don't you look
around by yourself for a while. I'll meet you here. Anything else you need
to know right now?"
   I  thought,  while  he  looked  impatient.  "Well-mind  if  I ask you a
question about you, Dane? Have you been out yet?"
   "Six  trips.  All  right,  I'll see you at twenty-two hundred." Then he
pushed  the  flexible  door open, slipped out into the jungly green of the
corridor and was gone.
   I let myself flop-so gently, so slowly-into my one real chair and tried
to make myself understand that I was on the doorstep of the universe.
   I  don't  know if I can make you feel it, how the universe looked to me
from  Gateway: like being young with Full Medical. Like a menu in the best
restaurant in the world, when somebody else is going to pick up the check.
Like a girl you've just met who likes you. Like an unopened gift.
   The  things  that  hit  you  first  on  Gateway are the tininess of the
tunnels,  feeling  tinier  even  than  they are because they're lined with
windowboxy  things  of  plants;  the vertigo from the low gravity, and the
stink. You get Gateway a little bit at a time. There's no way of seeing it
all  in  one  glance; it is nothing but a maze of tunnels in the rock. I'm
not  even sure they've all been explored yet. Certainly there are miles of
them that nobody ever goes into, or not very often.
   That's  the way the Heechees were. They grabbed the asteroid, plated it
over  with  wall  metal,  drove tunnels into it, filled them with whatever
sort  of  possessions  they  had-most were empty by the time we got there,
just  as  everything  that  ever belonged to the Heechees is, all over the
universe. And then they left it, for whatever reason they left.
   The  closest thing to a central point in Gateway is Heecheetown. That's
a  spindle-shaped cave near the geometric center of the asteroid. They say
that when the Heechees built Gateway they lived there. We lived there too,
at  first, or close to it, all of us new peopie off Earth. (And elsewhere.
A  ship from Venus had come in just before ours.) That's where the company
housing  is. Later on, if we got rich on a prospecting trip, we could move
out  farther toward the surface, where there was a little more gravity and
less  noise.  And  above  all,  less  smell.  A couple thousand people had
breathed  the air I was breathing, one time or another, voided the water I
drank  and exuded their smells into the atmosphere. The people didn't stay
around very long, most of them. But the smells were still there.
   I  didn't  care about the smell. I didn't care about any of it. Gateway
was  my  big,  fat  lottery  ticket  to Full Medical, a nine-room house, a
couple  of  kids, and a lot of joy. I had won one lottery already. It made
me cocky about my chances of winning another.
   It  was  all  exciting,  although at the same time it was dingy enough,
too.  There  wasn't  much luxury around. For your $238,575 what you get is
transportation  to  Gateway,  ten days' worth of food, lodging, and air, a
cram  course  in  ship  handling, and an invitation to sign up on the next
ship  out.  Or  any ship you like. They don't make you take any particular
ship, or for that matter any ship at all.
   The  Corporation doesn't make any profit on any of that. All the prices
are  fixed  at  about  cost.  That  doesn't  mean  they were cheap, and it
certainly doesn't mean that what you got was good. The food was just about
what  I  had  been digging, and eating, all my life. The lodging was about
the  size  of  a  large  steamer  trunk,  one chair, a bunch of lockers, a
fold-down table, and a hammock that you could stretch across it, corner to
corner, when you wanted to sleep.
   My  next-door  neighbors  were  a family from Venus. I caught a glimpse
through  the  part-opened  door.  Imagine! Four of them sleeping in one of
those  cubicles!  It  looked  like  two  to  a  hammock, with two hammocks
crisscrossed  across  the  room.  On  the  other  side was Sheri's room. I
scratched  at  her  door,  but  she didn't answer. The door wasn't locked.
Nobody  locks his door much on Gateway, because there's nothing much worth
stealing among other reasons. Sheri wasn't there. The clothes she had been
wearing on the ship were thrown all over.
   I  guessed  that  she  had  gone out exploring, and wished I had been a
little  earlier.  I  would  have  liked  someone to explore with. I leaned
against  the  ivy  growing out of one wall of the tunnel and pulled out my
map.
   It  did give me some idea of what to look for. There were things marked
"Central  Park"  and  "Lake  Superior."  What  were they? I wondered about
"Gateway  Museum,"  which  sounded  interesting,  and "Terminal Hospital,"
which sounded pretty bad-I found out later that "terminal" meant as in end
of  the  line,  on  your  return  trip  from  wherever  you  went  to. The
Corporation  must have known that it had another sound to it, too; but the
Corporation never went to much trouble to spare a prospector's feelings.
   What I really wanted was to see a ship!
   As  soon  as  that  thought percolated out of my mind I realized that I
wanted  it  a  lot. I puzzled over how to get to the outer skin, where the
ship docks were located of course. Holding onto a railing with one hand, I
tried  to  keep  the  map  open  with the other. It didn't take me long to
locate myself. I was at a five-way intersection which seemed to be the one
marked  "East  Star  Babe G" on the map. One of the five tunnels out of it
led to a dropshaft, but I couldn't tell which.
   I  tried  one  at  random,  wound up in a dead end, and on the way back
scratched  on a door for directions. It opened. "Excuse me-" I said... and
stopped.
   The  man who opened the door seemed as tall as I, but was not. His eyes
were on a level with my own. But he stopped at the waist. He had no legs.
   He said something, but I didn't understand it; it wasn't in English. It
wouldn't  have mattered. My attention was taken up with him. He wore gauzy
bright  fabric  strapped  from wrists to waist, and he fluttered the wings
gently  to stay in the air. It wasn't hard, in Gateway's low-G. But it was
surprising to see. I said, "I'm sorry. I just wanted to know how to get to
Level Tanya." I was trying not to stare, but I wasn't succeeding.
   He smiled, white teeth in an unlined, old face. He had jet eyes under a
crest  of  short  white  hair. He pushed past me out into the corridor and
said  in  excellent  English,  "Certainly.  Take the first turning on your
right.  Go  to  the  next  star, and take the second turning on your left.
It'll  be  marked."  He  indicated  with his chin the direction toward the
star.
   |      WELCOME TO GATEWAY!
   |
   |      Congratulations!
   |
   |      You are one of a very few people each year who
   |  may   become   a   limited   partner   in  Gateway
   |  Enterprises, Inc. Your first obligation is to sign
   |  the enclosed Memorandum of Agreement. You need not
   |  do  this  at once. You are encouraged to study the
   |  agreement and to seek legal advice, if available.
   |
   |      However,  until  you  sign  you  will  not  be
   |  eligible  to  occupy  Corporation housing, dine at
   |  the  Corporation  commissary or participate in the
   |  Corporation instruction courses.
   |
   |      Accommodations  are  available  at the Gateway
   |  Hotel  and  Restaurant  for  those who are here as
   |  visitors,  or  who  do not at present wish to sign
   |  the Memorandum of Agreement.
   |      KEEPING GATEWAY GOING
   |
   |      In  order  to  meet  the  costs of maintaining
   |  Gateway,  all  persons are required to pay a daily
   |  per-capita   assessment   for   air,   temperature
   |  control, administration, and other services.
   |      If  you  are a guest, this cost is included in
   |  your hotel bill.
   |      Rates  for  other  persons are posted. The tax
   |  may  be  prepaid  up  to  one  year  in advance if
   |  desired.  Failure  to pay the daily per-capita tax
   |  will result in immediate expulsion from Gateway.
   |      Note:   Availability  of  a  ship  to  receive
   |  expelled persons cannot be guaranteed.
   I  thanked  him and left him floating behind me. I wanted to turn back,
but  it didn't seem good manners. It was strange. It hadn't occurred to me
that there would be any cripples on Gateway.
   That's how naive I was then.
   Having  seen  him,  I knew Gateway in a way I had not known it from the
statistics.  The statistics are clear enough, and we all studied them, all
of us who came up as prospectors, and all of that vastly larger number who
only  wished they could. About eighty percent of flights from Gateway come
up  empty.  About fifteen percent don't come back at all. So one person in
twenty,  on the average, comes back from a prospecting trip with something
that  Gateway-that  mankind  in general-can make a profit on. Most of even
those are lucky if they collect enough to pay their costs for getting here
in the first place.
   And  if  you  get hurt while you're out... well, that's tough. Terminal
Hospital  is  about  as well equipped as any anywhere. But you have to get
there  for it to do you any good. You can be months in transit. If you get
hurt   at  the  other  end  of  your  trip-and  that's  where  it  usually
happens-there's  not  much  that can be done for you until you get back to
Gateway.  By  then it can be too late to make you whole, and likely enough
too late to keep you alive.
   There's no charge for a return trip to where you came from, by the way.
The rockets always come up fuller than they return. They call it wastage.
   The return trip is free... but to what?
   I  let  go the down-cable on Level Tanya, turned into a tunnel, and ran
into  a  man  with  cap  and  armband. Corporation Police. He didn't speak
English,  but he pointed and the size of him was convincing; I grabbed the
up-cable,  ascended  one  level,  crossed  to another dropshaft, and tried
again.
   The  only  difference  was that this time the guard spoke English. "You
can't come through here," he said.
   "I just want to see the ships."
   "Sure.  You  can't.  You've got to have a blue badge," he said, tapping
his own. "That's Corporation specialist, flight crew or maintenance."
   "I am flight crew."
   He  grinned.  "You're  a  new fish off the Earth transport, aren't you?
Friend,  you'll  be  flight  crew  when  you  sign on for a flight and not
before. Go on back up."
   I  said  reasonably, "You understand how I feel, don't you? I just want
to get a look."
   "You  can't, till you've finished your course, except they'll bring you
down here for part of it. After that, you'll see more than you want."
   I  argued a little more, but he had too many arguments on his side. But
as  I  reached  for the up-cable the tunnel seemed to lurch and a blast of
sound  hit  my ears. For a minute I thought the asteroid was blowing up. I
stared  at  the guard, who shrugged, in a not unfriendly way. "I only said
you couldn't see them," he said. "I didn't say you couldn't hear them."
   I  bit  back  the "wow" or "Holy God!" that I really wanted to say, and
said, "Where do you suppose that one's going?"
   "Come back in six months. Maybe we'll know by then."
   Well,  there  was nothing in that to feel elated about. All the same, I
felt elated. After all those years in the food mines, here I was, not only
on  Gateway,  but  right there when some of those intrepid prospectors set
out  on  a  trip  that would bring them fame and incredible fortune! Never
mind the odds. This was really living on the top line.
   So  I wasn't paying much attention to what I was doing, and as a result
I got lost again on the way back. I reached Level Babe ten minutes late.
   Dane  Metchnikov  was  striding  down  the tunnel away from my room. He
didn't appear to recognize me. I think he might have passed me if I hadn't
put out my arm.
   "Huh," he grunted. "You're late."
   "I was down on Level Tanya, trying to get a look at the ships."
   "Huh. You can't go down there unless you have a blue badge or a bangle."
   Well,  I  had found that out already, hadn't I? So I tagged along after
him, without wasting energy on attempts at further conversation.
   Metchnikov  was  a  pale  man,  except for the marvelously ornatecurled
whisker  that followed the line of his jaw. It seemed to be waxed, so that
each separate curl stood out with a life of its own. "Waxed" was wrong. It
had  something  in  it besides hair, but whatever it was wasn't stiff. The
whole  thing  moved  as he moved, and when he talked or smiled the muscles
moored  to  the  jawbone  made  the  beard ripple and flow. He finally did
smile,  after  we  got  to  the  Blue  Hell.  He  bought  the first drink,
explaining  carefully  that  that was the custom, but that the custom only
called  for  one. I bought the second. The smile came when, out of turn, I
also bought the third.
   |      WHAT IS GATEWAY?
   |
   |      Gateway   is   an   artifact  created  by  the
   |  so-called  Heechee. It appears to have been formed
   |  around  an  asteroid,  or  the core of an atypical
   |  comet. The time of this event is not known, but it
   |  almost   surely   precedes   the   rise  of  human
   |  civilization.
   |      Inside   Gateway   the  environment  resembles
   |  Earth,except   that  there  is  relatively  little
   |  gravity.  (There is actually none, but centrifugal
   |  force  derived  from  Gateway's  rotation  gives a
   |  similar  effect.)  If you have come from Earth you
   |  will  notice  some difficulty in breathing for the
   |  first  few  days  because  of  the low atmospheric
   |  pressure.  However, the partial pressure of oxygen
   |  is  identical  with  the  2000-meter  elevation at
   |  Earth  and  is  fully  adequate for all persons in
   |  normal health.
   Over  the noise in the Blue Hell talk wasn't easy, but I told him about
hearing  a  launch. "Right," he said, lifting his glass. "Hope they have a
good  trip."  He  wore  six  blue-glowing  Heechee metal bracelets, hardly
thicker than wire. They tinkled faintly as he swallowed half the drink.
   "Are they what I think they are?" I asked. "One for every trip out?"
   He  drank  the other half of the drink. "That's right. Now I'm going to
dance,"  he said. My eyes followed his back as he lunged toward a woman in
a luminous pink sari. He wasn't much of a talker, that was sure.
   On  the  other hand, at that noise level you couldn't talk much anyhow.
You couldn't really dance much, either. The Blue Hell was up in the center
of  Gateway, part of the spindle-shaped cave. Rotational G was so low that
we  didn't  weigh  more  than  two or three pounds; if anyone had tried to
waltz  or  polka  he would have gone flying. So they did those no-touching
junior-high-school   sort   of  dances  that  appear  to  be  designed  so
fourteen-year-old  boys won't have to look up at too sharp an angle to the
fourteen-year-old  girls  they're  dancing with. You pretty much kept your
feet  in  place,  and your head and arms and shoulders and hips went where
they wanted to. Me, I like to touch. But you can't have everything. I like
to dance, anyway.
   I  saw Sheri, way across the room, with an older woman I took to be her
proctor,  and  danced one with her. "How do you like it so far?" I shouted
over  the  tapes.  She  nodded  and shouted something back, I couldn't say
what.  I  danced  with an immense black woman who wore two blue bracelets,
then  with  Sheri  again,  then with a girl Dane Metchnikov dropped on me,
apparently  because  he  wanted  to  be  rid  of  her,  then  with a tall,
strong-faced  woman  with  the blackest, thickest eyebrows I had ever seen
under  a  female  hairdo.  (She  wore  it pulled back in two pigtails that
floated  around  behind her as she moved.) She wore a couple of bracelets,
too. And between dances I drank.
   They  had tables that were meant for parties of eight or ten, but there
weren't  any parties of eight or ten. People sat where they wanted to, and
took  each  other's  seats  without  worrying  about whether the owner was
coming back. For a while there were half a dozen crewmen in Brazilian Navy
dress  whites  sitting with me, talking to each other in Portuguese. A man
with  one  golden earring joined me for a while, but I couldn't understand
what  he  was  saying,  either.  (I  did,  pretty well, understand what he
meant.)
   There  was that trouble all the time I was in Gateway. There always is.
Gateway  sounds  like  an  international  conference  when the translation
equipment has broken down. There's a sort of lingua franca you hear a lot,
pieces  of  a  dozen  different languages thrown together, like, "Ecoutez,
gospodin,  tu  es  verreckt." I danced twice with one of the Brazilians, a
skinny,  dark little girl with a hawk nose but sweet brown eyes, and tried
to say a few simple words. Maybe she understood me. One of the men she was
with,  though,  spoke  fine English, introduced himself and the others all
around.  I  didn't  catch  any of the names but his, Francesco Hereira. He
bought  me  a drink, and let me buy one for the crowd, and then I realized
I'd  seen him before: He was one of the detail that searched us on the way
in.
   While we were commenting on that, Dane leaned over me and grunted in my
ear, "I'm going to gamble. So long, unless you really want to come."
   It  wasn't  the  warmest  invitation I'd ever had, but the noise in the
Blue  Hell  was  getting  heavy.  I  tagged  after  him  and  discovered a
full-scale  casino  just  next  to  the  Blue Hell, with blackjack tables,
poker, a slow-motion roulette with a big, dense ball, craps with dice that
took  forever  to  stop, even a roped-off section for baccarat. Metchnikov
headed  for  the blackjack tables and drummed his fingers on the back of a
player's  chair, waiting for an opening. Around then he noticed I had come
with him.
   "Oh." He looked around the room. "What do you like to play?"
   "I've  played  it all," I said, slurring the words a little. Bragging a
little, too. "Maybe a little baccarat."
   He  looked  at  me  first  with  respect,  then amusement. "Fifty's the
minimum bet."
   I had five or six thousand dollars left in my account. I shrugged.
   "That's fifty thousand," he said.
   I  choked.  He  said  absently,  moving over behind a player whose chip
stack  was  running  out,  "You  can get down for ten dollars at roulette.
Hundred  minimum  for  most  of  the others. Oh, there's a ten-dollar slot
machine  around  somewhere, I think." He dived for the open chair and that
was the last I saw of him.
   I  watched  for a moment and realized that the black-eyebrowed girl was
at the same table, busy studying her cards. She didn't look up.
   I  could see I wasn't going to be able to afford much gambling here. At
that  point  I  realized  I couldn't really afford all the drinks I'd been
buying,  either,  and  then  my  interior  sensory system began to make me
realize just how many of those drinks I had had. The last thing I realized
was that I had to get back to my room, pretty fast.
   |      SYLVESTER MACKLEN: FATHER OF GATEWAY
   |
   |      Gateway was discovered by Sylvester Macklen, a
   |  tunnel  explorer  on  Venus, who found an operable
   |  Heechee  spacecraft  in  a  dig.  He  succeeded in
   |  getting  it  to  the  surface  and  bringing it to
   |  Gateway,   where   it  now  rests  In  Dock  5-33.
   |  Tragically,  Macklen  was  not able to return and,
   |  although he succeeded in signaling his presence by
   |  exploding the fuel tank of the lander of his ship,
   |  he was dead before Investigators reached Gateway.
   |      Macklen  was a courageous and resourceful man,
   |  and  the  plaque  at  Dock  5-33  commemorates his
   |  unique  service  to humanity. Services are held at
   |  appropriate   times   by  representatives  of  the
   |  various faiths.

   I  am  on the mat, and I am not very comfortable. Physically, I mean. I
have  had  an  operation not long ago and probably the stitches aren't yet
absorbed.
   Sigfrid says, "We were talking about your job, Rob."
   That's  dull  enough.  But  safe  enough.  I  say, "I hated my job. Who
wouldn't hate the food mines?"
   "But  you  kept  it, Rob. You never even tried to get on anywhere else.
You  could  have  switched  to  sea-farming, maybe. And you dropped out of
school."
   "You're saying I stuck myself in a rut?"
   "I'm not saying anything, Rob. I'm asking you what you feel."
   "Well.  I  guess  in a sense I did do that. I thought about making some
kind of a change. I thought about it a lot," I say, remembering how it was
in those bright early days with Sylvia. I remember sitting with her in the
cockpit  of a parked sailplane on a January night-we had no other place to
go-and  talking  about the future. What we would do. How we would beat the
odds.  There's  nothing  there for Sigfrid, as far as I can see. I've told
Sigfrid  all  about Sylvia, who married a stockholder in the long run. But
we'd  broken  up  long  before that. "I suppose," I say, pulling myself up
short  and trying to get my money's worth out of this session, "that I had
a kind of death wish."
   "I prefer that you don't use psychiatric terms, Rob."
   "Well, you understand what I mean. I knew time was going by. The longer
I  stayed in the mines the harder it would be to get out. But nothing else
looked any better. And there were compensations. My girlfriend, Sylvia. My
mother,  while  she was alive. Friends. Even some fun things. Sailplaning.
It is great over the hills, and when you're up high enough Wyoming doesn't
look so bad and you can hardly smell the oil."
   "You mentioned your girlfriend, Sylvia. Did you get along with her?"
   I  hesitated,  rubbing  at  my belly. I have almost half a meter of new
intestine  in  there now. They cost fearfully, those things, and sometimes
you  get the feeling the previous owner wants them back. You wonder who he
was.  Or she. How he died. Or did he die? Could he still be alive, so poor
that  he  sells  off  parts of himself, the way I've heard of pretty girls
doing with a well-shaped breast or ear?
   "Did you make friends with girls easily, Rob?"
   "I do now, all right."
   "Not  now,  Rob.  I  think you said you didn't make friends easily as a
child."
   "Does anyone?"
   "If  I  understand  that  question,  Robbie,  you  are asking if anyone
remembers  childhood  as  a  perfectly  happy  and easy experience, and of
course the answer is 'no.' But some people seem to carry the effects of it
over into their lives more than others."
   "Yeah.  I  guess,  thinking back, that I was a little afraid of my peer
group-sorry about that, Sigfrid! I mean the other kids. They all seemed to
know  each  other.  They  had  things  to  say to each other all the time.
Secrets. Shared experiences. Interests. I was a loner."
   "You were an only child, Robbie?"
   "You  know  I was. Yeah. Maybe that was it. Both my parents worked. And
they didn't like me playing near the mines. Dangerous. Well, it really was
dangerous  for  kids.  You  can get hurt around those machines, or even if
there's  a slide in the tailings or an outgassing. I stayed at home a lot,
watching  shows,  playing  cassettes.  Eating. I was a fat kid, Sigfrid. I
loved  all  the  starchy, sugary stuff with all the calories. They spoiled
me, buying me more food than I needed."
   I  still  like  to be spoiled. Now I get a higher class of diet, not as
fattening,  about  a  thousand  times  as expensive. I've had real caviar.
Often.  It  gets  flown  in  from  the  aquarium at Galveston. I have real
champagne, and butter.... "I remember lying in bed," I say, "I guess I was
very  small, maybe about three. I had a teddytalker. I took it to bed with
me,  and  it told me little stories, and I stuck pencils into it and tried
to pull its ears off. I loved that thing, Sigfrid."
   Maybe  maturity is wanting what you want, instead of what somebody else
tells you you should want.
   Maybe,  Sigfrid,  dear old tin god, but what it feels like is mature is
dead.
   I stop, and Sigfrid picks up immediately. "Why are you crying, Robbie?"
   "I  don't  know!"  I bawl, tears running down my face, and I look at my
watch,  the  skipping  green  numerals rippling through the tears. "Oh," I
say,  very  conversationally,  and sit up, the tears still rolling down my
face  but  the  fountain  turned off, "I've really got to go now, Sigfrid.
I've  got  a date. Her name's Tania. Beautiful girl. The Houston Symphony.
She  loves  Mendelssohn and roses, and I want to see if I can pick up some
of those dark-blue hybrids that will go with her eyes."
   "Rob, we've got nearly ten minutes left."
   "I'll  make  it  up  another  time."  I know he can't do that, so I add
quickly, "May I use your bathroom? I need to."
   "Are you going to excrete your feelings, Rob?"
   "Oh,  don't be smart. I know what you're saying. I know this looks like
a typical displacement mechanism-"
   "Rob."
   "-all  right,  I mean, it looks like I'm copping out. But I honestly do
have  to  go.  To the bathroom, I mean. And to the florist's, too. Tani is
pretty special. She's a fine person. I'm not talking about sex, but that's
great, too. She can g-She can-"
   "Rob? What are you trying to say?"
   I take a breath and manage to say: "She's great at oral sex, Sigfrid."
   "Rob?"
   I  recognize  that  tone.  Sigfrid's  repertory of vocal modes is quite
large,  but parts of it I have learned to identify. He thinks he is on the
track of something.
   "What?"
   "Rob, what do you call it when a woman gives you oral sex?"
   "Oh, Christ, Sigfrid, what kind of dumb game is this one?"
   "What do you call it, Rob?"
   "Ah! You know as well as I do."
   "Please tell me what you call it, Rob."
   "They say, like, 'She eats me.'"
   "What other expression, Rob?"
   "Lots of them! 'Giving head,' that's one. I guess I've heard a thousand
terms for it."
   "What other, Rob?"
   I  have  been  building up to rage and pain and it suddenly boils over.
"Don't  play these fucking games with me, Sigfrid!" My gut aches, and I am
afraid I am going to mess my pants; it is lIke being a baby again. "Jesus,
Sigfrid!  When  I  was  a  little  kid I used to talk to my teddy. Now I'm
forty-five and I'm still talking to a stupid machine as if it was alive!"
   "But there is another term, isn't there, Rob?"
   "There are thousands of them! Which one do you want?"
   "I  want  the  expression you were going to use and didn't, Rob. Please
try to say it. That term means something special to you, so that you can't
say the words without trouble."
   I crumple over onto the mat, and now I'm really crying.
   "Please say it, Rob. What's the term?"
   "Damn  you,  Sigfrid!  Going  down!  That's it. Going down, going down,
going down!"

   "Good  morning,"  said  somebody,  speaking  right into the middle of a
dream  about  getting  stuck  in  a sort of quicksand in the middle of the
Orion Nebula. "I have brought you some tea."
   I  opened  an  eye. I looked over the edge of the hammock into a nearby
pair  of  coalsack-black  eyes  set  into a sand-colored face. I was fully
dressed  and  hung over; something smelled very bad, and I realized it was
me.
   "My  name,"  said  the  person with the tea, "is Shikitei Baldu. Please
drink this tea. It will help rehydrate your tissues."
   I  looked  a  little further and saw that he ended at the waist; he was
the  legless man with the strap-on wings whom I had seen in the tunnel the
day  before.  "Uh,"  I  said, and tried a little harder and got as far as,
"Good  morning."  The  Orion Nebula was fading back into the dream, and so
was  the  sensation  of  having  to  push  through rapidly solidifying gas
clouds. The bad smell remained. The room smelled excessively foul, even by
Gateway standards, and I realized I had thrown up on the floor. I was only
millimeters  from  doing it again. Bakin, slowly stroking the air with his
wings,  dexterously dropped a stoppered flask next to me on the hammock at
the end of one stroke. Then he propelled himself to the top of my chest of
drawers, sat there, and said:
   |      WHO OWNS GATEWAY?
   |
   |      Gateway  is unique In the history of humanity,
   |  and  it  was  quickly  realized  that  it  was too
   |  valuable  a  resource to be given to any one group
   |  of  persons,  or  any  one  government.  Therefore
   |  Gateway Enterprises, Inc., was formed.
   |      Gateway  Enterprises  (usually  referred to as
   |  "the  Corporation") is a multinational corporation
   |  whose  general partners are the governments of the
   |  United  States  of  America, the Soviet Union, the
   |  United    States    of    Brazil,   the   Venusian
   |  Confederation,  and  New  People's Asia, and whose
   |  limited  partners  are all those persons who, like
   |  yourself,  have  signed the attached Memorandum of
   |  Agreement.
   "I  believe  you  have  a  medical examination this morning at oh eight
hundred hours."
   "Do  I?"  I  managed  to get the cap off the tea and took a sip. It was
very  hot,  sugarless,  and  almost  tasteless, but it did seem to tip the
scales inside my gut in the direction opposite to throwing up again.
   "Yes.  I  think  so.  It's customary. And in addition, your P-phone has
rung several times."
   I went back to, "Uh?"
   "I  presume  it  was  your proctor caffing you to remind you. It is now
seven-fifteen, Mr:"
   "Broadhead,"  I  said thickly, and then more carefully: "My name is Rob
Broadhead."
   "Yes.  I  took  the liberty of making sure you were awake. Please enjoy
your tea, Mr. Broadhead. Enjoy your stay on Gateway."
   He  nodded, fell forward off the chest, swooped toward the door, handed
himself through it, and was gone. With my head thudding at every change of
attitude  I  got  myself  out  of the hammock, trying to avoid the nastier
spots  on  the floor, and somehow succeeded in getting reasonably clean. I
thought  of depilating, but I had about twelve days on a beard and decided
to  let  it  go  for a while; it no longer looked unshaven, exactly, and I
just didn't have the strength.
   When  I  wobbled  into the medical examining room I was only about five
minutes  late.  The  others  in my group were all ahead of me, so I had to
wait  and go last. They extracted three kinds of blood from me, fingertip,
inside  of  the  elbow, and lobe of the ear, I was sure they would all run
ninety  proof.  But it didn't matter. The medical was only a formality. If
you could survive the trip up to Gateway by spacecraft in the first place;
you  could  survive a trip in a Heechee ship. Unless something went wrong.
In  which case you probably couldn't survive anyway, no matter how healthy
you were.
   I  had  time  for  a  quick  cup  of coffee off a cart that someone was
tending next to a dropshaft (private enterprise on Gateway? I hadn't known
that  existed),  and then I got to the first session of the class right on
the  tick.  We  met  in  a  big  room  on  Level  Dog, long and narrow and
low-ceilinged.  The  seats  were  arranged  two on each side with a center
aisle,  sort  of like a schoolroom in a converted bus. Sheri came in late,
looking  fresh and cheerful, and slipped in beside me; our whole group was
there,  all seven of us who had come up from Earth together, the family of
four  from  Venus  and a couple others I knew to be new fish like me. "You
don't  look too bad," Sheri whispered as the instructor pondered over some
papers on his desk.
   |      SHOWER PROCEDURE
   |
   |      This  shower  will  automatically  deliver two
   |  45-second sprays. Soap between sprays.
   |      You  are  entitled  to  1 use of the shower in
   |  each 3-day period.
   |      Additional showers may be charged against your
   |  credit balance at the rate of 45 seconds-$5
   "Does the hangover show?"
   "Actually  not.  But  I  assume  it's there. I heard you coming in last
night. In fact," she added thoughtfully, "the whole tunnel heard you."
   I  winced.  I  could  still smell myself, but most of it was apparently
inside me. None of the others seemed to be edging away, not even Sheri.
   The  instructor  stood up and studied us thoughtfully for a while. "Oh,
well,"  he said, and looked back at his papers. Then he shook his head. "I
won't  take  attendance,"  he  said.  "I  teach the course in how to run a
Heechee  ship."  I  noticed  he had a batch of bracelets; I couldn't count
them, but there were at least half a dozen. I wondered briefly about these
people  I  kept  seeing  who had been out a lot of times and still weren't
rich.  "This  is only one of the three courses you get. After this you get
survival  in  unfamiliar  environments,  and  then how to recognize what's
valuable.  But  this  one  is in ship-handling, and the way we're going to
start learning it is by doing it. All of you come with me."
   So we all got up and gaggled after him, out of the room, down a tunnel,
onto the down-cable of a dropshaft and past the guards-maybe the same ones
who had chased me away the night before. This time they just nodded to the
instructor  and  watched  us  go  past.  We  wound  up  in  a  long, wide,
low-ceilinged  passage  with  about  a dozen squared-off and stained metal
cylinders  sticking  up  out  of  the floor. They looked like charred tree
stumps, and it was a moment before I realized what they were.
   I gulped.
   "They're ships," I whispered to Sheri, louder than I intended. A couple
of people looked at me curiously. One of them, I noticed, was a girl I had
danced  with  the night before, the one with the dense black eyebrows. She
nodded  to  me and smiled; I saw the bangles on her arm, and wondered what
she was doing there-and how she had done at the gambling tables.
   The instructor gathered us around him, and said, "As someone just said,
these are Heechee ships. The lander part. This is the piece you go down to
a planet in, if you're lucky enough to find a planet. They don't look very
big,  but five people can fit into each of those garbage cans you see. Not
comfortably,  exactly. But they can. Generally speaking, of course, you'll
always  leave  one person in the main ship, so there'll be at most four in
the lander."
   He led us past the nearest of them, and we all satisfied the impulse to
touch, scratch, or pat it. Then he began to lecture:
   "There  were  nine  hundred  and  twenty-four  of these ships docked at
Gateway when it was first explored. About two hundred, so far, have proved
nonoperational.  Mostly  we  don't  know  why; they just don't work. Three
hundred  and  four  have  actually  been  sent  out  on at least one trip.
Thirty-three  of  those are here now, and available for prospecting trips.
The  others  haven't  been  tried  yet." He hiked himself up on the stumpy
cylinder and sat there while he went on:
   "One  thing  you  have to decide is whether you want to take one of the
thirty-three  tested ones or one of the ones that has never been flown. By
human  beings, I mean. There you just pay your money and take your choice.
It's  a gamble either way. A high proportion of the trips that didn't come
back  were  in  first flights, so there's obviously some risk there. Well,
that  figures,  doesn't  it? After all, nobody has done any maintenance on
them for God knows how long, since the Heechee put them there.
   "On  the  other hand, there's a risk in the ones that have been out and
back safely, too. There's no such thing as perpetual motion. We think some
of the no-returns have been because the ships ran out of fuel. Trouble is,
we  don't know what the fuel is, or how much there is, or how to tell when
a ship is about to run out."
   He  patted  the  stump.  "This,  and  all the others you see here, were
designed  for  five  Heechees  in the crews. As far as we can tell. But we
send  them  out  with  three  human beings. It seems the Heechee were more
tolerant of each other's company in confined spaces than people are. There
are bigger and smaller ships, but the no-return rate on them has been very
bad  the  last  couple of orbits. It's probably just a string of bad luck,
but...  Anyway,  I personally would stick with a Three. You people, you do
what you want.
   "So you come to your second choice, which is who you go with. Keep your
eyes open. Look for companions-What?"
   Sheri  had  been semaphoring her hand until she got his attention. "You
said 'very bad,'" she said. "How bad is that?"
   The  instructor  said  patiently, "In the last fiscal orbit about three
out  of ten Fives came back. Those are the biggest ships. In several cases
the crews were dead when we got them open, even so."
   "Yeah," said Sheri, "that's very bad."
   "No,  that's  not bad at all, compared to the one-man ships. Two orbits
ago we went a whole orbit and only two Ones came back at all. That's bad."
   "Why  is  that?"  asked the father of the tunnel-rat family. Their name
was Forehand. The instructor looked at him for a moment.
   "If  you  ever  find out," he said, "be sure and tell somebody. Now. As
far  as  selecting  a  crew is concerned, you're better off if you can get
somebody  who's  already  been  out.  Maybe  you  can,  maybe  you  can't.
Prospectors  who  strike  it  rich generally quit; the ones that are still
hungry  may  not  want  to  break up their teams. So a lot of you fish are
going  to  have  to  go  out  with  other  virgins. Umm." He looked around
thoughtfully.  "Well,  let's  get  our  feet wet. Sort yourselves out into
groups  of  three-don't  worry about who's in your group, this isn't where
you  pick  your  partners-and  climb into one of those open landers. Don't
touch  anything.  They're  supposed  to be in deactive mode, but I have to
tell  you  they  don't always stay deactive. Just go in, climb down to the
control cabin and wait for an instructor to join you."
   That  was  the  first  I'd  heard  that there were other instructors. I
looked around, trying to work out which were teachers and which were fish,
while he said, "Are there any questions?"
   Sheri again. "Yeah. What's your name?"
   "Did  I forget that again? I'm Jimmy Chou. Pleased to meet you all. Now
let's go."
   Now  I  know a lot more than my instructor did, including what happened
to  him half an orbit later-poor old Jimmy Chou, he went out before I did,
and  came back while I was on my second trip, very dead. Flare burns, they
say his eyes were boiled out of his bead. But at that time he knew it all,
and it was all very strange and wonderful to me.
   So we crawled into the funny elliptical hatch that let you slip between
the  thrusters  and  down  into  the  landing  capsule,  and  then  down a
peg-ladder one step further into the main vehicle itself.
   We  looked  around,  three  Ali  Babas staring at the treasure cave. We
heard  a  scratching above us, and a head poked in. It had shaggy eyebrows
and  pretty  eyes, and it belonged to the girl I had been dancing with the
night before. "Having fun?" she inquired. We were clinging together as far
from  anything  that looked movable as we could get, and I doubt we really
looked  at  ease.  "Never mind," she said, "just look around. Get familiar
with  it.  You'll  see  a lot of it. That vertical line of wheels with the
little spokes sticking out of them? That's the target selector. That's the
most  important  thing not to touch for now-maybe ever. That golden spiral
thing  over  next to you there, the blond girl? Anybody want to guess what
that's for?"
   You-there-blond-girl,  who  was  one  of the Forehand daughters, shrank
away  from it and shook her head. I shook mine, but Sheri hazarded, "Could
it be a hatrack?"
   Teacher  squinted at it thoughtfully. "Hmm. No, I don't think so, but I
keep  hoping  one of you fish will know the answer. None of us here do. It
gets  hot  sometimes  in  flight; nobody knows why. The toilet's in there.
You're  going  to have a lot of fun with that. But it does work, after you
learn  how.  You  can  sling your hammocks and sleep there-or anywhere you
want  to, actually. That corner, and that recess are pretty dead space. If
you're  in  a  crew  that  wants  some privacy, you can screen them off. A
little bit, anyway."
   Sheri  said, "Don't any of you people like to tell your names?" Teacher
grinned.  "I'm  Gelle-Klara  Moynlin.  You want to know the rest about me?
I've been out twice and didn't score, and I'm killing time until the right
trip comes along. So I work as assistant instructor."
   "How do you know which is the right trip?" asked the Forehand girl.
   "Bright  fellow,  you. Good question. That's another of those questions
that  I  like  to  hear  you ask, because it shows you're thinking, but if
there's  an  answer  I  don't know what it is. Let's see. You already know
this  ship  is  a  Three.  It's  done  six round trips already, but it's a
reasonable  bet  that  it's got enough reserve fuel for a couple more. I'd
rather take it than a One. That's for long-shot gamblers."
   "Mr.  Chou said that," said the Forehand girl, "but my father says he's
been  all  through  the  records since Orbit One, and the Ones aren't that
bad."
   |      WHAT DOES THE CORPORATION DO?
   |
   |      The  purpose  of the Corporation is to exploit
   |  the  spacecraft  left by the Heechee, and to trade
   |  in,  develop,  or otherwise utilize all artifacts,
   |  goods,  raw  materials,  or  other things of value
   |  discovered by means of these vessels.
   |      The    Corporation    encourages    commercial
   |  development  of  Heechee  technology,  and  grants
   |  leases on a royalty basis for this purpose.
   |      Its  revenues  are  used  to  pay  appropriate
   |  shares  to limited partners, Such as you, who have
   |  been  instrumental  in  discovering  new things of
   |  value;  to  pay  the  costs of maintaining Gateway
   |  itself   over   and   above   the  per-capita  tax
   |  contribution;  to  pay  to  each  of  the  general
   |  partners  an  annual  sum  sufficient to cover the
   |  cost  of  maintaining surveillance by means of the
   |  space  cruisers  you  will  have observed in orbit
   |  nearby; to create and maintain an adequate reserve
   |  for  contingencies;  and to use the balance of its
   |  income  to  subsidize  research and development on
   |  the objects of value themselves.
   |      In  the  fiscal  year ending February 30 last,
   |  the  total revenues of the Corporation exceeded 3.
   |  7 x 10^12 dollars U. S.
   "Your  father  can have mine," said Gelle-Klara Moynlin. "It's not just
statistics.  Ones  are  lonesome.  Anyway,  one person can't really handle
everything  if  you hit lucky, you need shipmates, one in orbit-most of us
keep  one  man  in the ship, feels safer that way; at least somebody might
get  help if things go rancid. So two of you go down in the lander to look
around. Of course, if you do hit lucky you have to split it three ways. If
you  hit  anything big, there's plenty to go around. And if you don't hit,
one-third of nothing is no less than all of it."
   "Wouldn't it be even better in a Five, then?" I asked.
   Klara  looked  at  me  and half-winked; I hadn't thought she remembered
dancing the night before. "Maybe, maybe not. The thing about Fives is that
they have almost unlimited target acceptance."
   "Please talk English," Sheri coaxed.
   "Fives  will accept a lot of destinations that Threes and Ones won't. I
think  it's  because  some  of those destinations are dangerous. The worst
ship  I  ever  saw  come back was a Five. All scarred and seared and bent;
nobody  knows  how it made it back at all. Nobody knows where it had been,
either,  but  I  heard  somebody  say  it  might've  actually  been in the
photosphere of a star. The crew couldn't tell us. They were dead.
   "Of  course," she went on meditatively, "an armored Three has almost as
much  target  acceptance  as a Five, but you take your chances any way you
swing.  Now  let's get with it, shall we? You-" she pointed at Sheri, "sit
down over there."
   The  Forehand  girl  and  I crawled around the mix of human and Heechee
furnishings to make room. There wasn't much. If you cleared everything out
of  a  Three you'd have a room about four meters by three by three, but of
course if you cleared everything out it wouldn't go.
   Sheri  sat  down in front of the column of spoked wheels, wriggling her
bottom  to  try to get a fit. "What kind of behinds did the Heechee have?"
she complained.
   Teacher  said, "Another good question, same no-good answer. If you find
out,  tell  us.  The  Corporation  puts that webbing in the seat. It isn't
original  equipment. Okay. Now, that thing you're looking at is the target
selector.  Put  your  hand on one of the wheels. Any one. Just don't touch
any  other.  Now  move it." She peered down anxiously as Sheri touched the
bottom wheel, then thrust with her fingers, then laid the heel of her hand
on  it,  braced herself against the V-shaped arms of the seat, and shoved.
Finally it moved, and the lights along the row of wheels began to flicker.
   "Wow," said Sheri, "they must've been pretty strong!"
   We  took  turns  trying with that one wheel-Klara wouldn't let us touch
any  other  that day-and when it came my turn I was surprised to find that
it  took about as much muscle as I could bring to bear to make it move. It
didn't  feel  rusted  stuck; it felt as though it were meant to be hard to
turn.  And, when you think how much trouble you can get into if you turn a
setting by accident in the middle of a flight, it probably was.
   Of  course,  now I know more about that, too, than my teacher did then.
Not  that  I'm  so  smart, but it has taken, and is still taking, a lot of
people a hell of a long time to figure out what goes on just in setting up
a target on the course director.
   What it is is a vertical row of number generators. The lights that show
up  display  numbers; that's not easy to see, because they don't look like
numbers.  They  aren't  positional,  or  decimal.  (Apparently the Heechee
expressed numbers as sums of primes and exponents, but all that's way over
my head.) Only the check pilots and the course programmers working for the
Corporation  really have to be able to read the numbers, and they don't do
it  directly,  only  with  a  computing  translator. The first five digits
appear to express the position of the target in space, reading from bottom
to  top. (Dane Metchnikov says the prime ordering isn't from bottom to top
but  from  front to back, which says something or other about the Heechee.
They were three-D oriented, like primitive man, instead of two-D oriented,
like  us.)  You would think that three numbers would be enough to describe
any position anywhere in the universe, wouldn't you? I mean, if you make a
threedimensional representation of the Galaxy you can express any point in
it  by means of a number for each of the three dimensions. But it took the
Heechee  five.  Does  that  mean  there  were  five  dimensions  that were
perceptible to the Heechee? Metchnikov says not....
   Anyway.  Once you get a lock on the first five numbers, the other seven
can  be  turned  to  quite arbitrary settings and you'll still go when you
squeeze the action teat.
   |      GATEWAY'S SHIPS
   |
   |      The  vessels  available on Gateway are capable
   |  of  interstellar flight at speeds greater than the
   |  velocity  of light. The means of propulsion is not
   |  understood  (see  pilot  manual).  There is also a
   |  fairly   conventional  rocket  propulsion  system,
   |  using   liquid  hydrogen  and  liquid  oxygen  for
   |  attitude   control,  and  for  propulsion  of  the
   |  landing   craft   which   is   docked   into  each
   |  interstellar vessel.
   |      There   are   three   major   classifications,
   |  designated  as  Class  1,  Class  3,  and Class 5,
   |  according to the number of persons they can carry.
   |  Some  of  the  vessels  are  of particularly heavy
   |  construction and are designated "armored." Most of
   |  the armored class are Fives.
   |      Each  vessel  is programmed to navigate itself
   |  automatically  to a number of destinations. Return
   |  is  automatic,  and is quite reliable in practice.
   |  Your   course  in  ship-handling  will  adequately
   |  prepare   you  for  all  the  necessary  tasks  in
   |  piloting  your  vessel  safely; however, see pilot
   |  manual for safety regulations.
   What  you  usually  do-or  what  the course programmers the Corporation
keeps  on  the payroll to do this sort of thing for you usually do-is pick
four  numbers  at  random.  Then you cycle the fifth digit until you get a
kind of warning pink glow. Sometimes it's faint, sometimes it's bright. If
you  stop  there  and  press  the flat oval part under the teat, the other
numbers  begin  to  creep  around, just a couple of millimeters one way or
another,  and  the  pink  glow gets brighter. When they stop it's shocking
pink   and   shockingly   bright.  Metchnikov  says  that's  an  automatic
fine-tuning  device.  The machine allows for human error-sorry, I mean for
Heechee  error-so  when  you  get close to a real, valid target setting it
makes the final adjustments for you automatically. Probably he's right.
   (Of  course,  learning every step of this cost a lot of time and money,
and most of it cost some lives. It's dangerous being a prospector. But for
the first few out, it was more like suicidal.)
   Sometimes  you  can  cycle all the way through your fifth digit and get
nothing  at  all.  So what you do is, you swear. Then you reset one of the
other  four  and go again. It only takes a few seconds to cycle, but check
pilots  have  run  up a hundred hours of new settings before they got good
color.
   Of  course,  by  the  time  I went out, the check pilots and the course
programmers  had  worked  out  a couple hundred possible settings that had
been  logged as good color but not as yet used-as well as all the settings
that  had  been  used,  and  aren't worth going back to. Or that the crews
didn't come back from.
   But  all  that  I  didn't know at the time, and when I sat down in that
modified  Heechee seat it was all new, new, new. And I don't know if I can
make you understand what it felt like.
   I  mean,  there  I  was, in a seat where Heechee had sat half a million
years  ago. The thing in front of me was a target selector. The ship could
go  anywhere. Anywhere! If I selected the right target I could find myself
around Sirius, Procyon, maybe even the Magellanic Clouds!
   Teacher  got tired of hanging head-down and wriggled through, squeezing
in  behind  me.  "Your  turn,  Broadhead,"  she said, resting a hand on my
shoulder and what felt like her breasts on my back.
   I  was  reluctant  to  touch.  I asked, "Isn't there any way of telling
where you're going to wind up?"
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      HOW  DO  you  know  you're  not  a  Unitarian?
   |  Gateway Fellowship now forming. 87-539.
   |
   |      BILITIS  WANTED  for  Sappho and Lesbia, joint
   |  trips  till we make it, then happily ever after in
   |  Northern   Ireland.  Permanent  trimarriage  only.
   |  87-033 or 87-034.
   |
   |      STORE   YOUR   effects.   Save   rent,   avoid
   |  Corporation   seizure   while  out.  Fee  includes
   |  disposal instructions if nonreturn. 88-125.
   "Probably," she said, "providing you're a Heechee with pilot training."
   "Not even like one color means you're going farther from here than some
other color?"
   "Not  that  anybody  here has figured out. Of course, they keep trying.
There's  a  whole  team  that spends its time programming returned mission
reports  against  the  settings they went out with. So far they've come up
empty.  Now  let's  get on with it, Broadhead. Put your whole hand on that
first  wheel,  the  one  the  others  have used. Shove it. It'll take more
muscle than you think."
   It  did. In fact, I was almost afraid to push it hard enough to make it
work.  She  leaned over and put her hand on mine, and I realized that that
nice musk-oil smell that had been in my nostrils for the last little while
was  hers.  It  wasn't  just  musk,  either; her pheromones were snuggling
nicely into my chemoreceptors. It made a very nice change from the rest of
the Gateway stink.
   But  all  the same, I didn't get even a show of color, although I tried
for  five  minutes before she waved me away and gave Sheri another shot in
my place.
   When  I  got  back  to  my  room somebody had cleaned it up. I wondered
gratefully  who  that  had  been, but I was too tired to wonder very long.
Until you get used to it, low gravity can be exhausting; you find yourself
overusing  all your muscles because you have to relearn a whole pattern of
economies.
   I slung my hammock and was just dozing off when I heard a scratching at
the lattice of my door and Sheri's voice: "Rob?"
   "What?"
   "Are you asleep?"
   Obviously  I  wasn't,  but  I  interpreted the question the way she had
intended it. "No. I've been lying here thinking."
   "So was I.... Rob?"
   "Yeah?"
   "Would you like me to come into your hammock?"
   I  made  an effort to wake myself up enough to consider the question on
its merits.
   "I really want to," she said.
   "All  right. Sure. I mean, glad to have you." She slipped into my room,
and I slid over in the hammock, which swung slowly as she crawled into it.
She  was  wearing  a knitted T-shirt and underpants, and she felt warm and
soft  against  me  when  we  rolled  gently  together in the hollow of the
hammock.
   "It doesn't have to be sex, stud," she said. "I'm easy either way."
   "Let's see what develops. Are you scared?"
   Her  breath  was the sweetest-smelling thing about her; I could feel it
on my cheek. "A lot more than I thought I would be."
   "Why?"
   "Rob-"  she  squirmed  herself comfortable and then twisted her neck to
look  at  me  over her shoulder, "you know, you say kind of asshole things
sometimes?"
   "Sorry."
   "Well,  I  mean  it.  I mean, look what we're doing. We're going to get
into a ship that we don't know if it's going to get where it's supposed to
go,  and  we  don't even know where it's supposed to go. We go faster than
light,  nobody knows how. We don't know how long we'll be gone, even if we
knew  where  we were going. So we could be traveling the rest of our lives
and  die  before  we  got there, even if we didn't run into something that
would kill us in two seconds. Right? Right. So how come you ask me why I'm
scared?"
   "Just  making  conversation."  I  curled up along her back and cupped a
breast, not aggressively but because it felt good.
   "And  not  only that. We don't know anything about the people who built
these  things.  How  do  we  know this isn't all a practical joke on their
part? Maybe their way of luring fresh meat into Heechee heaven?"
   "We don't," I agreed. "Roll over this way."
   "And  the  ship  they showed us this morning doesn't hardly look like I
thought  it  was  going  to be, at all," she said, doing as I told her and
putting a hand on the back of my neck.
   There was a sharp whistle from somewhere, I couldn't tell where.
   "What's that?"
   "I  don't  know."  It  came again, sounding both out in the tunnel and,
louder,  inside  my  room. "Oh, it's the phone." What I was hearing was my
own piezophone and the ones on either side of me, all ringing at once. The
whistle stopped and there was a voice:
   "This  is Jim Chou. All you fish who want to see what a ship looks like
when it comes back after a bad trip, come to Docking Station Four. They're
bringing it in now."
   I  could  hear  a  murmuring  from the Forehands' room next door, and I
could feel Sheri's heart pounding. "We'd better go," I said.
   "I know. But I don't think I want to-much."
   The ship had made it back to Gateway, but not quite all the way. One of
the  orbiting  cruisers had detected it and closed in on it. Now a tug was
bringing  it  in  to  the  Corporation's own docks, where usually only the
rockets  from the planets latched in. There was a hatch big enough to hold
even a Five. This was a Three, what there was left of it.
   "Oh,  sweet Jesus," Sheri whispered. "Rob, what do you suppose happened
to them?"
   "To the people? They died." There was not really any doubt of that. The
ship  was a wreck. The lander stem was gone, just the interstellar vehicle
itself, the mushroom cap, was still there, and that was bent out of shape,
split  open,  seared by heat. Split open! Heechee metal, that doesn't even
soften under an electric arc!
   But we hadn't seen the worst of it.
   We  never  did see the worst of it, we only heard about it. One man was
still  inside  the  ship.  All  over  the  inside of the ship. He had been
literally  spattered  around  the  control  room, and his remains had been
baked onto the walls. By what? Heat and acceleration, no doubt. Perhaps he
had  found  himself  skipping into the upper reaches of a sun, or in tight
orbit  around  a  neutron  star.  The  differential  in gravity might have
shredded ship and crew like that. But we never knew.
   The  other  two  persons in the crew were not there at all. Not that it
was  easy to tell; but the census of the organs revealed only one jaw, one
pelvis,  one  spine-though in many short pieces. Perhaps the other two had
been in the lander?
   "Move it, fish!"
   Sheri  caught  my  arm  and  pulled  me  out of the way. Five uniformed
crewmen  from  the  cruisers came through, in American and Brazilian blue,
Russian    beige,    Venusian   work   white   and   Chinese   all-purpose
black-and-brown. The American and the Venusian were female; the faces were
all different, but the expressions were all the same mixture of discipline
and distaste.
   "Let's  go." Sheri tugged me away. She didn't want to watch the crewmen
poke through the remnants, and neither did I. The whole class, Jimmy Chou,
Klara and the other teachers and all, began to straggle back to our rooms.
Not  quite  quick  enough.  We had been looking through the ports into the
lock;  when  the patrol from the cruisers opened it, we got a whiff of the
air  inside.  I  don't know how to describe it. A little bit like overripe
garbage  being  cooked  to swill to pigs. Even in the rank air of Gateway,
that was hard to take.
   Teacher  dropped off at her own level-down pretty low, in the high-rent
district  around  Easy  Level.  When  she  looked  up  after  me as I said
goodnight I observed for the first time that she was crying.
   Sheri and I said goodnight to the Forehands at their door, and I turned
to her, but she was ahead of me.
   "I  think  I'll  sleep  this  one out," she said. "Sorry, Rob, but, you
know, I just don't feel like it anymore."
   |      SAFETY RULES FOR GATEWAY SHIPS
   |
   |      The mechanism for interstellar travel is known
   |  to be contained in the diamond-shaped box which is
   |  located  under  the center keel of 3-man and 5-man
   |  ships, and in the sanitary facilities of the 1-man
   |  ships.
   |      No  one  has  successfully opened one of those
   |  containers. Each attempt has resulted in explosion
   |  of approximately 1-kiloton force. A major research
   |  project   is  attempting  to  penetrate  this  box
   |  without  destroying  it,  and  if you as a limited
   |  partner  have  any  information  or suggestions in
   |  this  connection  you should contact a Corporation
   |  officer at once.
   |      However,  under  no  circumstances  attempt to
   |  open  the  box  yourself. Tampering with it in any
   |  way, or docking a vessel on which the box has been
   |  tampered  with, is strictly forbidden. The penalty
   |  is   forfeiture   of   all  rights  and  immediate
   |  expulsion from Gateway.
   |      The  course-directing  equipment  also poses a
   |  potential  danger.  Under  no circumstances should
   |  you  attempt  to  change the setting once you have
   |  begun  your  flight.  no  vessel in which this has
   |  been done has ever returned.

   I  don't  know  why  I  keep  going  back  to  Sigfrid  von  Shrink. My
appointment  with  him  is always on a Wednesday afternoon, and he doesn't
like it if I drink or dope before then. So it blows the whole day. I pay a
lot  for  those days. You don't know what it costs to live the way I live.
My  apartment over Washington Square is eighteen thousand dollars a month.
My  residence  taxes  to  live  under the Big Bubble come to another three
thousand  plus.  (It  doesn't cost that much to stay on Gateway!) I've got
some  pretty  hefty  charge  accounts  for  furs, wine, lingerie, jewelry,
flowers.  Sigfrid  says  I  try to buy love. All right, I do. What's wrong
with  that?  I  can afford it. And that's not mentioning what Full Medical
costs me.
   Sigfrid,  though,  comes  free.  I'm  covered  by  the Full Medical for
psychiatric  therapy,  any  variety  I  like;  I could have group grope or
internal  massage for the same price, namely nothing. I kid him about that
sometimes.  "Even  considering  that  you're just a bag of rusty bolts," I
say, "you're not much good. But your price is right."
   He  asks, "Does that make you feel that you yourself are more valuable,
if you say that I'm not?"
   "Not particularly."
   "Then  why  do  you insist on reminding yourself that I'm a machine? Or
that I don't cost anything? Or that I cannot transcend my programming?"
   "I guess you just piss me off, Sigfrid." I know that won't satisfy him,
so  I  explain  it. "You ruined my morning. This friend, S. Ya. Lavorovna,
stayed  over  last night. She's something." So I tell Sigfrid a little bit
about what S. Ya. is like, including what she is like walking away from me
in stretch pants with that long dirtygold hair hanging down to her waist.
   "She sounds very nice," Sigfrid comments.
   "Bet  your bolts. Only thing is, she wakes up slow in the morning. Just
when  she was getting lively again I had to leave my summer place, up over
Tappan Sea, and come down here."
   "Do you love her, Rob?"
   The answer is no, so I want him to think it's yes. I say, "No."
   "I  think  that's  an  honest  answer,  Rob," he says, approvingly, and
disappointingly. "Is that why you're angry with me?"
   "Oh, I don't know. Just in a bad mood, I guess."
   "Can you think of any reasons why?"
   He  waits  me  out,  so after a while I say, "Well, I took a licking at
roulette last night."
   "More than you can afford?"
   "Christ!  No." But it's annoying, all the same. There are other things,
too.  It's  getting  toward that chilly time of year. My place over Tappan
Sea  isn't  under  the Bubble, so sitting out on the porch with S. Ya. for
brunch  wasn't  such a good idea. I don't want to mention this to Sigfrid.
He  would  say  something wholly rational like, well, why didn't I have my
lunch  served  indoors?  And  I would just have to tell him all over again
that  when  I  was a kid it was my dream to own a summer place over Tappan
Sea  and have brunch on the porch, looking out over it. They'd just dammed
the  Hudson  then,  when  I  was about maybe twelve. I used to dream a lot
about  Making It Big and living in the style of The Rich Folks. Well, he's
heard all that.
   Sigfrid  clears  his  throat. "Thank you, Rob," he says, to let me know
that the hour is over. "Will I see you next week?"
   "Don't  you  always?"  I  say, smiling. "How the time flies. Actually I
wanted to leave a little early today."
   "Did you, Rob?"
   "I  have another date with S. Ya.," I explain. "She's coming back up to
the  summer  place  with  me  tonight.  Frankly, what she's going to do is
better therapy than what you do."
   He says, "Is that all you want out of a relationship, Robbie?"
   "You  mean,  just sex?" The answer in this case is no, but I don't want
him  to  know just what it is I do want out of my relationship with S. Ya.
Lavorovna.  I  say, "She's a little different from most of my girlfriends,
Sigfrid.  She  has  about as much clout as I do, for one thing. Has a damn
good job. I admire her."
   Well, I don't, particularly. Or rather, I don't care much about whether
I admire her or not. S. Ya. has one trait that impresses me even more than
possessing  the  sweetest  rear view that God ever laid on a human female.
Her damn good job is in information handling. She went to the Akademogorsk
University,  she  was  a  fellow  at  the Max Planck Institute for Machine
Intelligence,  and  she  teaches graduate students in the AI department at
NYU.  She  knows  more about Sigfrid than Sigfrid knows about himself, and
that suggests interesting possibilities to me.

   Along  about  my  fifth  day  on  Gateway  I got up early and splurged,
breakfast out in the Heecheetown Arms, surrounded by tourists, bloody-eyed
gamblers  from the casino across the spindle, and liberty sailors from the
cruisers.  It  felt  luxurious,  and  cost luxurious, too. It was worth it
because  of  the tourists. I could feel their eyes on me. I knew they were
talking  about  me,  particularly  a  smooth-faced  but  old African type,
Dahomeyan  or  Ghanaian,  I  think,  with his very young, very plump, very
jeweled   wife.  Or  whatever.  As  far  as  they  could  tell,  I  was  a
swashbuckling hero. True, I didn't have any bangles on my arm, but some of
the veterans didn't wear them, either.
   I  basked.  I  considered  ordering real eggs and bacon, but that was a
little  more  than  even my euphoria would let me go for, so I settled for
orange  juice (it turned out to be real, to my surprise) and a brioche and
several cups of black Danish coffee. All I was really missing was a pretty
girl  across  the armboard of the chair. There were two nice-looking women
who  seemed  to  be  the liberty crew from the Chinese cruiser, neither of
them unwilling to exchange a few radio messages by the glance of the eyes,
but I decided to keep them as open prospects for some future date and paid
my check (that was painful enough) and left for class.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      GOURMET    COOKERY    to    order.   Szechuan,
   |  California,  Cantonese.  Specialty  party munches.
   |  The Wongs, ph 83-242.
   |
   |      LECTURE   &   PV   careers   are  waiting  for
   |  multi-bracelet  retirees!  Sign  up now for course
   |  public    speaking,   holoview   preparation,   PR
   |  management.    Inspect    authenticated    letters
   |  graduates earning $3000/wk up. 86-521.
   |
   |      WELCOME  TO Gateway! Make contacts quickly our
   |  unique  service.  200  names, preferences on file.
   |  Introductions $5O. 88-963.
   On  the  way  down  I caught up with the Forehands. The man, whose name
seemed  to  be  Sess,  dropped  off the down-cable and waited to wish me a
polite good morning. "We didn't see you at breakfast," his wife mentioned,
so  I  told  them  where  I  had  been. The younger daughter, Lois, looked
faintly  envious.  Her mother caught the expression and patted her. "Don't
worry,  hon.  We'll eat there before we go back to Venus." To me: "We have
to watch our pennies right now. But when we hit, we've got some pretty big
plans for spending the profits."
   "Don't we all," I said, but something was turning over in my head. "Are
you really going to go back to Venus?"
   "Certainly,"  they all said, in one way or another, and acted surprised
at  the  question.  Which surprised me. I hadn't realized that tunnel rats
could  manage to think of that molten stinkpot as home. Sess Forehand must
have read my expression, too. They were a reserved family, but they didn't
miss much. He grinned and said:
   "It's our home, after all. So is Gateway, in a way."
   That was astonishing. "Actually, we're related to the first man to find
Gateway, Sylvester Macklen. You've heard of him?"
   "How could I not?"
   "He  was  a  sort  of  a  cousin.  I guess you know the whole story?" I
started  to  say  I  did,  but he obviously was proud of his cousin, and I
couldn't  blame  him,  and  so I heard a slightly different version of the
familiar  legend:  "He  was  in one of the South Pole tunnels, and found a
ship.  God  knows  how he got it to the surface, but he did, and he got in
and   evidently   squeezed   the   go-teat,  and  it  went  where  it  was
programmed-here."
   "Doesn't  the  Corporation pay a royalty?" I asked. "I mean, if they're
going  to  pay  for discoveries, what discovery would be more worth paying
for?"
   "Not to us, anyway," said Louise Forehand, somewhat somberly; money was
a hard subject with the Forehands. "Of course, Sylvester didn't set out to
find Gateway. As you know from what we've been hearing in class, the ships
have  automatic  return. Wherever you go, you just squeeze the go-teat and
you  come  straight back here. Only that didn't help Sylvester, because he
was  here. It was the return leg of a round trip with about a zillion-year
stopover."
   "He  was  smart and strong." Sess took up the story. "You have to be to
explore.  So  he  didn't  panic.  But by the time anybody came out here to
investigate  he  was  out  of  life  support. He could have lived a little
longer. He could have used the lox and H-two from the lander tanks for air
and water. I used to wonder why he didn't."
   |      LAUNCH AVAILABILITIES
   |
   |      30-107.
   |      FIVE.  Three vacancies, Englishspeaking. Terry
   |  Yakamora (ph 83-675) or Jay Parduk (83-004).
   |
   |      30-108.
   |      THREE.   Armored.   One  vacancy,  English  or
   |  French.   BONUS   TRIP.  Dorlean  Sugrue  (P-phone
   |  88-108).
   |
   |      30-109.
   |      ONE.  Check  trip.  Good  safety  record.  See
   |  Launch Captain.
   |
   |      30-110.
   |      ONE. Armored. BONUS TRIP. See Launch Captain.
   |
   |      30-111.
   |      THREE. Open enlistment. See Launch Captain.
   |
   |      30-112.
   |      THREE.  Probable  short trip. Open enlistment.
   |  Minimum guarantee. See Launch Captain.
   |
   |      30-113.
   |      ONE.   Four   vacancies   via   Gateway   Two.
   |  Transportation  in  reliable  Five. Tikki Trumbull
   |  (ph 87-869).
   "Because  he  would  have starved anyway," Louise cut in, defending her
relative.
   "I  think  so. Anyway, they found his body, with his notes in his hand.
He had cut his throat."
   They  were  nice people, but I had heard all this, and they were making
me late for class.
   Of  course,  class wasn't all that exciting just at that point. We were
up  to  Hammock  Slinging  (Basic) and Toilet Flushing (Advanced). You may
wonder why they didn't spend more time actually teaching us how to fly the
ships.  That's  simple.  The things flew themselves, as the Forehands, and
everybody  else,  had  been  telling me. Even the landers were no sweat to
operate,  although  they did require a hand on the controls. Once you were
in  the lander all you had to do was compare a three-D sort of holographic
representation of the immediate area of space with where you wanted to go,
and  maneuver  a  point  of  light  in the tank to the point you wanted to
reach.  The  lander  went  there.  It  calculated its own trajectories and
corrected  its  own  deviations. It took a little muscular coordination to
get the hang of twisting that point of light to where you wanted it to go,
but it was a forgiving system.
   Between  the  sessions of flushing practice and hammock drill we talked
about  what  we  were  going to do when we graduated. The launch schedules
were kept up to date and displayed on the PV monitor in our class whenever
anyone pushed the button. Some of them had names attached to them, and one
or  two  of the names I recognized. Tikki Trumbull was a girl I had danced
with and sat next to in the mess hall once or twice. She was an out-pilot,
and as she needed crew I thought of joining her. But the wiseheads told me
that out-missions were a waste of time.
   I  should tell you what an out-pilot is. He's the guy who ferries fresh
crews  to  Gateway  Two.  There  are about a dozen Fives that do that as a
regular  run.  They take four people out (which would be what Tikki wanted
people  for),  and  then  the  pilot  comes  back alone, or with returning
prospectors-if any-and what they've found. Usually there's somebody.
   The  team who found Gateway Two are the ones we all dreamed about. They
made  it.  Man, did they make it! Gateway Two was another Gateway, nothing
more  or  less,  except that it happened to orbit around a star other than
our  own.  There  was  not much more in the way of treasure on Gateway Two
than there was on our own Gateway; the Heechee had swept everything pretty
clean,  except  for the ships themselves. And there weren't nearly as many
ships there, only about a hundred and fifty, compared to almost a thousand
on our old original solar Gateway. But a hundred and fifty ships are worth
finding  all  by themselves. Not to mention the fact that they accept some
destinations that our local Gateway's ships don't appear to.
   The  ride out to Gateway Two seems to be about four hundred light-years
and  takes  a  hundred  and  nine days each way. Two's principal star is a
bright blue B-type. They think it is Alcyone in the Pleiades, but there is
some  doubt. Well, actually that's not Gateway Two's real star. It doesn't
orbit the big one, but a little cinder of a red dwarf nearby. They say the
dwarf  is  probably a distant binary with the blue B, but they also say it
shouldn't be because of the difference in ages of the two stars. Give them
a  few  more years to argue and they'll probably know. One wonders why the
Heechee  would  have  put  their  spacelines  junction  in orbit around so
undistinguished a star, but one wonders a lot about the Heechee.
   However,  all  that  doesn't  affect  the  pocketbook  of  the team who
happened  to  find  the  place.  They get a royalty on everything that any
later  prospector finds! I don't know what they've made so far, but it has
to  be  in the tens of millions apiece. Maybe the hundreds. And that's why
it  doesn't  pay  to  go  with  an out-pilot; you don't really have a much
better chance of scoring, and you have to split what you get.
   So  we  went down the list of upcoming launches and hashed them over in
the  light  of  our  five-day expertise. Which wasn't much. We appealed to
Gelle-Klara  Moynlin  for  advice.  After  all,  she'd been out twice. She
studied the list of flights and names, pursing her lips. "Terry Yakamora's
a  decent  guy,"  she  said.  "I  don't know Parduk, but it might be worth
taking  a  chance  on  that  one.  Lay  off  Dorlean's  flight.  There's a
million-dollar  bonus,  but what they don't tell you is that they've got a
bastard  control  board  in  it.  The  Corporation's experts have put in a
computer  that's  supposed  to override the Heechee target selector, and I
wouldn't  trust  it.  And,  of  course,  I wouldn't recommend a One in any
circumstances."
   Lois  Forehand  asked,  "Which  one would you take if it was up to you,
Klara?"
   She  scowled thoughtfully, rubbing that dark left eyebrow with the tips
of  her  fingers.  "Maybe  Terry. Well, any of them. But I'm not going out
again  for a while." I wanted to ask her why, but she turned away from the
screen  and said, "All right, gang, let's get back to the drill. Remember,
up for pee; down, close, wait ten and up for poo."
   I  celebrated  completing  the week on ship-handling by offering to buy
Dane  Metchnikov  a  drink.  That  wasn't  my  first  intention.  My first
intention  had  been to buy Sheri a drink and drink it in bed, but she was
off  somewhere.  So  I  worked  the  buttons  on  the  piezophone  and got
Metchnikov.
   He  sounded  surprised  at  my  offer.  "Thanks,"  he  said,  and  then
considered.  "Tell  you what. Give me a hand carrying some stuff, and then
I'll buy you a drink."
   So  I  went down to his place, which was only one level below Babe; his
room  was  not  much  better than my own, and bare, except for a couple of
full  carry-alls.  He  looked  at me almost friendly. "You're a prospector
now," he grunted.
   "Not really. I've got two more courses."
   "Well,  this  is  the last you see of me, anyway. I'm shipping out with
Terry Yakamora tomorrow."
   I was surprised. "Didn't you just get back, like ten days ago?"
   "You  can't  make  any money hanging around here. All I was waiting for
was  the right crew. You want to come to my farewell party? Terry's place.
Twenty hundred."
   "That sounds fine," I said. "Can I bring Sheri?"
   "Oh,  sure,  she's  coming anyway, I think. Buy you the drink there, if
you don't mind. Give me a hand and we'll get this stuff stored."
   He  had accumulated a surprising amount of goods. I wondered how he had
managed  to  stash them all away in a room as tiny as my own: three fabric
carriers  all  stuffed  full, holodisks and a viewer, book tapes and a few
actual  books.  I took the carriers. On Earth they would have weighed more
than  I  could  handle,  probably  fifty  or sixty kilos, but of course on
Gateway  lifting them was no problem; it was only tugging them through the
corridors  and  jockeying  them down the shafts that was tricky. I had the
mass,  but  Metchnikov had the problems, since what he was carrying was in
odd  shapes and varying degrees of fragility. It was about an hour's haul,
actually.  We  wound  up  in a part of the asteroid I'd never seen before,
where  an  elderly  Pakistani  woman counted the pieces, gave Metchnikov a
receipt and began dragging them away down a thickly vine-grown corridor.
   "Whew," he grunted. "Well, thanks."
   "You're  welcome."  We  started  back  toward  a  dropshaft, and making
conversation,  I  assume  out of some recognition that he owed me a social
favor and should practice some social skills, he said:
   "So how was the course?"
   "You  mean  apart  from  the  fact that I've just finished it and still
don't have any idea how to fly those goddamned ships?"
   "Well,  of  course  you  don't,"  he said, irritably. "The course isn't
going  to  teach you that. It just gives you the general idea. The way you
learn,  you  do it. Only hard part's the lander, of course. Anyway, you've
got your issue of tapes?"
   "Oh,  yes." There were six cassettes of them. Each of us had been given
a  set when we completed the first week's course. They had everything that
had  been said, plus a lot of stuff about different kinds of controls that
the Corporation might, or might not, fit on a Heechee board and so on.
   "So play them over," he said. "If you've got any sense you'll take them
with  you  when you ship out. Got plenty of time to play them then. Mostly
the ships fly themselves anyway."
   "They'd  better,"  I said, doubting it. "So long." He waved and dropped
onto  the down-cable without looking back. Apparently I had agreed to take
the drink he owed me at the party. Where it wouldn't cost him anything.
   I  thought of looking for Sheri again, and decided against it. I was in
a  part of Gateway I didn't know, and of course I'd left my map back in my
room. I drifted along, more or less at random, past star-points where some
of the tunnels smelled musty and dusty and there weren't many people, then
through  an inhabited section that seemed to be mostly Eastern European. I
didn't recognize the languages, but there were little notes and wall signs
hanging from the everywhere-growing ivy that were in alphabets that looked
Cyrillic  or  even  stranger. I came to a dropshaft, thought for a moment,
and  then  caught  hold  of  the  up-cable. The easy way not to be lost on
Gateway is to go up until you get to the spindle, where "up" ends.
   But  this  time  I  found  myself passing Central Park and, on impulse,
dropped off the up-cable to sit by a tree for a while.
   Central Park isn't really a park. It's a large tunnel, not far from the
center  of rotation of the asteroid, which has been devoted to vegetation.
I  found  orange trees there (which explained the juice), and grape vines;
and  ferns  and  mosses,  but no grass. I am not sure why. Probably it has
something  to  do  with  planting only varieties that are sensitive to the
available  light, mostly the blue gleam from the Heechee metal all around,
and  perhaps  they couldn't find a grass that could use it efficiently for
its  photochemistry.  The  principal reason for having Central Park in the
first  place was to suck up CO2 and give back oxygen; that was before they
spread planting all over the tunnels. But it also killed smells, or anyway
it  was  supposed  to, a little, and it grew a certain amount of food. The
whole  thing  was  maybe eighty meters long and twice as tall as I was. It
was  broad enough to have room for some winding paths. The stuff they grew
in looked a lot like good old genuine Earthside dirt. What it was, really,
was  a  humus  made  out  of the sewage sludge from the couple of thousand
people who had used Gateway toilets, but you couldn't tell that by looking
at it, or by smelling it, either.
   The  first  tree  big enough to sit by was no good for that purpose; it
was  a  mulberry,  and  under it were spread out sheets of fine netting to
catch the dropping fruit. I walked past it, and down the path there were a
woman and a child.
   A  child!  I hadn't known there were any children on Gateway. She was a
little  bit  of  a  thing, maybe a year and a half, playing with a ball so
big, and so lazy in the light gravity, that it was like a balloon.
   "Hello, Rob."
   That  was  the other surprise; the woman who greeted me was Gelle-Klara
Moynlin. I said without thinking, "I didn't know you had a little girl."
   "I  don't.  This  is  Kathy  Francis, and her mother lets me borrow her
sometimes. Kathy, this is Rob Broadhead."
   "Hello,  Rob,"  the  little thing called, studying me from three meters
away. "Are you a friend of Klara's?"
   "I hope so. She's my teacher. Do you want to play catch?"
   Kathy  finished  her study of me and said precisely, each word separate
from  the one before it and as clearly formed as an adult's, "I don't know
how  to  play catch, but I will get six mulberries for you. That's all you
can have."
   "Thank  you."  I  slumped down next to Klara, who was hugging her knees
and watching the child. "She's cute."
   "Well,  I  guess  so.  It's  hard to judge, when there aren't very many
other children around."
   "She's not a prospector, is she?"
   I  wasn't  exactly  joking,  but Klara laughed warmly. "Her parents are
permanent-party.  Well,  most  of  the  time.  Right  now her mother's off
prospecting;  they do that sometimes, a lot of them. You can spend just so
much time trying to figure out what the Heechee were up to before you want
to try your own solutions to the puzzles."
   "Sounds dangerous."
   She  shushed  me.  Kathy came back, with three of my mulberries in each
open  hand, so as not to crush them. She had a funny way of walking, which
didn't  seem to use much of the thigh and calf muscles; she sort of pushed
herself  up on the ball of each foot in turn, and let herself float to the
next  step.  After I figured that out I tried it for myself, and it turned
out  to  be a pretty efficient way of walking in near-zero gravity, but my
reflexes  kept  lousing it up. I suppose you have to be born on Gateway to
come by it naturally.
   Klara  in  the  park was a lot more relaxed and feminine than Klara the
teacher. The eyebrows that had looked masculine and angry became outdoorsy
and friendly. She still smelled very nice.
   It was pretty pleasant, chatting with her, while Kathy stepped daintily
around us, playing with her ball. We compared places we'd been, and didn't
find  any  in  common.  The one thing we did find in common was that I was
born almost the same day as her two-year-younger brother.
   "Did you like your brother?" I asked, a gambit played for the hell of it.
   "Well,  sure.  He was the baby. But he was an Aries, born under Mercury
and  the Moon. Made him fickle and moody, of course. I think he would have
had a complicated life."
   |      This Park Is MONITORED By Closed-Circuit PV
   |
   |      You  are  welcome  to  enjoy  it.  Do not pick
   |  flowers  or  fruit. Do not damage any plant. While
   |  visiting,  you  may  eat  any  fruits  which  have
   |  fallen, to the following limits:
   |      Grapes, cherries
   |      8 per person
   |      Other small fruits or berries
   |      6 per person
   |      Oranges, limes, pears
   |      1 per person
   |      Gravel  may not be removed from walks. Deposit
   |  all trash of any kind in receptacles.
   |      MAINTENANCE DIVISION THE GATEWAY CORPORATION
   I  was less interested in asking her about what happened to him than in
asking  if  she  really  believed  in  that  garbage, but that didn't seem
tactful,  and  anyway she went on talking. "I'm a Sagittarius, myself. And
you-oh, of course. You must be the same as Davie."
   "I guess so," I said, being polite. "I, uh, don't go much for astrology."
   "Not astrology, genethlialogy. One's superstition, the other's science."
   She  laughed.  "I  can  see  you're  a  scoffer. Doesn't matter. If you
believe,  all  right;  if you don't-well, you don't have to believe in the
law  of  gravity  to  get  mashed  when  you  fall off a two-hundred story
building."
   Kathy,  who  had sat down beside us, inquired politely, "Are you having
an argument?"
   "Not really, honey." Klara stroked her head.
   "That's  good,  Klara,  because  I have to go to the bathroom now and I
don't think I can, here."
   "It's  time  to  go  anyway.  Nice  to  see  you,  Rob.  Watch  out for
melancholy,  hear?"  And they went away hand in hand, Klara trying to copy
the little girl's odd walk. Looking very nice... for a flake.
   That  night  I  took Sheri to Dane Metchnikov's going-away party. Klara
was there, looking even nicer in a bare-midriff pants suit. "I didn't know
you knew Dane Metchnikov," I said.
   "Which  one  is  he?  I  mean,  Terry's  the one who invited me. Coming
inside?"
   The  party  had  spilled out into the tunnel. I peered through the door
and  was  surprised to find how much room there was inside; Terry Yakamora
had  two  full  rooms, both more than twice the size of mine. The bath was
private  and  really  did  contain a bath, or at least a showerhead. "Nice
place,"  I  said  admiringly,  and  then discovered from something another
guest said that Klara lived right down the tunnel. That changed my opinion
of Klara: if she could afford the high-rent district, why was she still on
Gateway?  Why  wasn't  she back home spending her money and having fun? Or
contrariwise,  if  she  was  still  on Gateway, why was she fooling around
keeping  barely  even  with  the  head  tax  by  working  as  an assistant
instructor,  instead  of going out for another killing? But I didn't get a
chance  to  ask  her.  She  did  most of her dancing that night with Terry
Yakamora and the others in the outgoing crew.
   I  lost  track  of Sheri until she came over to me after a slow, almost
unmoving  fox-trot,  bringing  her partner. He was a very young man-a boy,
actually;  he looked about nineteen. He looked familiar: dark skin, almost
white  hair,  a  wisp  of  a  jaw-beard  that drew an arc from sideburn to
sideburn by way of the underside of his chin. He hadn't come up from Earth
with me. He wasn't in our class. But I'd seen him somewhere.
   Sheri introduced us. "Rob, you know Francesco Hereira?"
   "I don't think so."
   "He's from the Brazilian cruiser." Then I remembered. He was one of the
inspectors  who  had gone in to fish through the baked gobbets of flesh on
the shipwreck we'd seen a few days earlier. He was a torpedoman, according
to  his cuff stripes. They give the cruiser crews temporary duty as guards
on  Gateway, and sometimes they give them liberty there, too. He'd come in
in  the regular rotation about the time we arrived. Somebody put on a tape
for  a  hora just then, and after we were through dancing, a little out of
breath,  Hereira  and  I  found ourselves leaning against the wall side by
side, trying to stay out of the way of the rest of the party. I told him I
had just remembered seeing him at the wreck.
   "Ah, yes, Mr. Broadhead. I recall."
   "Tough job," I said, for something to say. "Isn't it?"
   He  had  been  drinking  enough  to  answer  me,  I  guess.  "Well, Mr.
Broadhead,"  he said analytically, "the technical description of that part
of  my job is 'search and registry.' It is not always tough. For instance,
in  a  short  time  you will no doubt go out, and when you come back I, or
someone  else  in my job, will poke into your holes, Mr. Broadhead. I will
turn  out your pockets, and weigh and measure and photograph everything in
your  ship.  That is to make sure you do not smuggle anything of value out
of  your  vessel  and  off  Gateway without paying the Corporation its due
share.  Then I register what I have found; if it is nothing, I write 'nil'
on  the  form,  and  another crewman from another cruiser chosen at random
does the same thing exactly. So you will have two of us prying into you."
   It  didn't  sound  like  a  lot  of fun for me, but not as bad as I had
thought at first. I said so.
   He flashed small, very white teeth. "When the prospector to be searched
is  Sheri  or  Gelle-Klara  over  there, no, not bad at all. One can quite
enjoy  it. But I have not much interest in searching males, Mr. Broadhead.
Especially  when they are dead. Have you ever been in the presence of five
human bodies that have been dead, but not embalmed, for three months? That
was  what  it  was  like  on  the  first  ship I inspected. I do not think
anything will be that bad ever again."
   Then  Sheri  came  up and demanded him for another dance, and the party
went on.
   There  were  a  lot of parties. It turned out there always had been, it
was  just  that we new fish hadn't been part of the network, but as we got
nearer graduating we got to know more people. There were farewell parties.
There  were  welcome-back  parties,  but not nearly as many of those. Even
when  crews  did  come back, there was not always any reason to celebrate.
Sometimes  they  had  been gone so long they had lost touch with all their
friends.  Sometimes,  when  they  had  hit  fairly lucky, they didn't want
anything but to get off Gateway on the way home. And sometimes, of course,
they  couldn't  have  a  party  because  parties  aren't  permitted in the
intensive care rooms at Terminal Hospital.
   It  wasn't  all  parties;  we had to study. By the end of the course we
were supposed to be fully expert in ship-handling, survival techniques and
the  appraisal  of  trade  goods. Well, I wasn't. Sheri was even worse off
than  I. She took to the ship-handling all right, and she had a shrewd eye
for  detail  that would help her a lot in appraising the worth of anything
she  might find on a prospecting trip. But she didn't seem able to get the
survival course through her head.
   Studying with her for the final examinations was misery:
   "Okay,"  I'd  tell  her,  "this  one's a type-F star with a planet with
point-eight surface G, a partial pressure of oxygen of 130 millibars, mean
temperature  at the equator plus forty Celsius. So what do you wear to the
party?"
   She  said accusingly, "You're giving me an easy one. That's practically
Earth."
   "So what's the answer, Sheri?"
   She  scratched  reflectively  under her breast. Then she shook her head
impatiently. "Nothing. I mean, I wear an airsuit on the way down, but once
I get to the surface I could walk around in a bikini."
   |      DUTY AND LEAVE ROSTER USS MAYAGUEZ
   |
   |      1.  Following officers and crewpersons tr temp
   |  dy  stns  Gateway  for  contraband  inspection and
   |  compliance patrol;
   |      LINKY, Tina
   |      W/O
   |      MASKO, Casimir E.
   |      BsnM 1
   |      MIRARCHI, Lory S
   |      S2 2.
   |      Following officers and crewpersons authd 24-hr
   |  temp dy Gateway for R&R;
   |      GRYSON, Katie W
   |      LtJ
   |      HARVEY, Iwan
   |      RadM
   |      HLEB, Caryle T
   |      S1
   |      HOLL, William F Jr
   |      S1   3.   All  officers  and  crewpersons  are
   |  cautioned  once  again  to  avoid  any  repeat any
   |  dispute  with  officers  and  crewpersons of other
   |  patrol   vessels  regardless  of  nationality  and
   |  regardless  of  circumstances, and to refrain from
   |  divulging  classified  information  to  any person
   |  whatsoever.  Infractions  will  be  dealt  with by
   |  complete deprivation of Gateway leave, in addition
   |  to  such  other punishments as a defaulter's court
   |  may  direct.  4.  Temporary  duty  on Gateway is a
   |  privilege,  not  a right. If you want it, you have
   |  to earn it.
   |      By Command of the CAPTAIN USS MAYAGUEZ
   "Shithead! You'd be maybe dead in twelve hours. Earth-normal conditions
means  there's  a good chance of an Earth normal-type biology. Which means
pathogens that could eat you up."
   "So all right-" she hunched her shoulders, "so I'd keep the suit until,
uh, I tested for pathogens."
   "And how do you do that?"
   "I  use the fucking kit, stupid!" She added hastily, before I could say
anything, "I mean I take the, let's see, the Basic Metabolism disks out of
the freezer and activate them. I stay in orbit for twenty-four hours until
they're  ripe,  then  when  I'm down on the surface I expose them and take
readings with my, uh, with my C-44."
   "C-33. There's no such thing as a C-44."
   "So  all  right.  Oh,  and also I pack a set of antigen boosters, so if
there's  a  marginal  problem  with  some sort of microorganism I can give
myself a booster shot and get temporary immunity."
   "I  guess that's all right, so far," I said doubtfully. In practice, of
course,  she  wouldn't  need  to  remember  all  that.  She would read the
directions on the packages, or play her course tapes, or better still, she
would  be  out  with  somebody  who had been out before and would know the
ropes.  But  there  was also the chance that something unforeseen would go
wrong  and she would be on her own resources, not to mention the fact that
she had a final test to take and pass. "What else, Sheri?"
   "The  usual,  Rob!  Do I have to run through the whole list? All right.
Radio-relay; spare powerpack; the geology kit; ten-day food ration-and no,
I  don't  eat  anything I find on the planet at all, not even if there's a
McDonald's  hamburger  stand right next to the ship. And an extra lipstick
and some sanitary napkins."
   I waited. She smiled prettily, outwaiting me.
   "What about weapons?"
   "Weapons?"
   "Yes, God damn it! If it's nearly Earth normal, what are the chances of
life being there?"
   "Oh,  yes. Let's see. Well, of course, if I need them I take them. But,
wait  a  minute,  first  I  sniff  for  methane in the atmosphere with the
spectrometer  reading  from orbit. If there's no methane signature there's
no life, so I don't have to worry."
   "There's  no  mammalian  life,  and  you  do  have to worry. What about
insects? Reptiles? Dluglatches?"
   "Dluglatches?"
   "A  word I just made up to describe a kind of life we've never heard of
that doesn't generate methane in its gut but eats people."
   "Oh,  sure.  All  right,  I'll  take  a  sidearm  and  twenty rounds of
soft-nosed ammo. Give me another one."
   And  so we went on. When we first started rehearsing each other what we
usually  said  at  a  point  like  that was either, "Well, I won't have to
worry,  because  you'll  be there with me anyway," or "Kiss me, you fool."
But we'd kind of stopped saying that.
   In spite of it all, we graduated. All of us.
   We gave ourselves a graduation party, Sheri and me, and all four of the
Forehands,  and  the others who had come up from Earth with us and the six
or  seven who had appeared from one place or another. We didn't invite any
outsiders,  but our teachers weren't outsiders. They all showed up to wish
us  well. Klara came in late, drank a quick drink, kissed us all, male and
female, even the Finnish kid with the language block who'd had to take all
his  instruction  on  tapes.  He  was  going  to have a problem. They have
instruction  tapes for every language you ever heard of, and if they don't
happen  to  have your exact dialect they run a set through the translating
computer  from  the nearest analogue. That's enough to get you through the
course,  but after that the problem starts. You can't reasonably expect to
be  accepted  by  a  crew  that can't talk to you. His block kept him from
learning  any  other  language, and there was not a living soul on Gateway
who spoke Finnish.
   We  took  over  the  tunnel three doors in each direction past our own,
Sheri's,  the  Forehands'  and  mine. We danced and sang until it was late
enough for some of us to begin to drop off, and then we dialed in the list
of open launches on the PV screen. Full of beer and weed, we cut cards for
first pick and I won.
   Something  happened  inside  my  head.  I didn't sober up, really. That
wasn't it. I was still feeling cheerful and sort of warm all over and open
to  all  personality  signals  that  were coming in. But a part of my mind
opened  up  and  a  pair of clear-seeing eyes peered out at the future and
made  a  judgment. "Well," I said, "I guess I'll pass my chance right now.
Sess, you're number two; you take your pick."
   "Thirty-one-oh-nine,"  he  said promptly; all the Forehands had made up
their minds in family meeting, long since. "Thanks, Rob."
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      GILLETTE, RONALD C., departed Gateway sometime
   |  in  last  year.  Anyone having information present
   |  whereabouts  please  inform  wife,  Annabelle,  do
   |  Canadian Legation, Tharsis, Mars. Reward.
   |
   |      OUTPILOTS, REPEAT winners, let your money work
   |  for  you  while  you're  out. Invest mutual funds,
   |  growth stocks, land, other opportunities. Moderate
   |  counseling fee. 88-301.
   |
   |      PORNODISKS  FOR  those  long, lonely trips. 50
   |  hours $500. All interests or to order. Also models
   |  wanted. 87-108.
   I  gave him a carefree, drunken wave. He didn't really owe me anything.
That  was  a  One, and I wouldn't have taken a One for any price. For that
matter, there wasn't anything on the board I liked. I grinned at Klara and
winked;  she  looked  serious  for  a  minute, then winked back, but still
looked  serious.  I  knew  she realized what I had come to understand: all
these  launches were rejects. The best ones had been snapped up as soon as
they were announced by returnees and permanent-party.
   Sheri  had  drawn  fifth  pick,  and  when  it came her turn she looked
directly  at  me.  "I'm going to take that Three if I can fill it up. What
about it, Rob? Are you going to come or not?"
   I  chuckled.  "Sheri,"  I  said,  sweetly  reasonable,  "there's  not a
returnee that wants it. It's an armored job. You don't know where the hell
it might be going. And there's far too much green in the guidance panel to
suit  me." (Nobody really knew what the colors meant, of course, but there
was   a   superstition  in  the  school  that  a  lot  of  green  meant  a
superdangerous mission.)
   "It's the only open Three, and there's a bonus."
   "Not  me, honey. Ask Klara; she's been around a long time and I respect
her judgment."
   "I'm asking you, Rob."
   "No. I'll wait for something better."
   "I'm  not  waiting,  Rob. I already talked to Willa Forehand, and she's
agreeable. If worse comes to worst we'll fill it out with-anybody at all,"
she  said,  looking at the Finnish kid, smiling drunkenly to himself as he
stared  at  the  launch  board.  "But-you  and I did say we were going out
together."
   I shook my head.
   "So  stay  here and rot," she flared. "Your girlfriend's just as scared
as you are!"
   Those  sober  eyes  inside  my  skull  looked at Klara, and the frozen,
unmoving  expression  on  her face; and, wonderingly, I realized Sheri was
right. Klara was like me. We were both afraid to go.

   I  say  to  Sigfrid, "This isn't going to be a very productive session,
I'm afraid. I'm just plain exhausted. Sexually, if you know what I mean."
   "I certainly do know what you mean, Rob."
   "So I don't have much to talk about."
   "Do you remember any dreams?"
   I  squirm on the couch. As it happens, I do remember one or two. I say,
"No." Sigfrid is always after me to tell him my dreams. I don't like it.
   When  he  first  suggested  it I told him I didn't dream very often. He
said  patiently, "I think you know, Rob, that everyone dreams. You may not
remember the dreams in the waking state. But you can, if you try."
   "No, I can't. You can. You're a machine."
   "I  know  I'm a machine, Rob, but we're talking about you. Will you try
an experiment?"
   "Maybe."
   "It  isn't hard. Keep a pencil and a piece of paper beside your bed. As
soon as you wake up, write down what you remember."
   "But I don't ever remember anything at all about my dreams."
   "I think it's worth a try, Rob."
   Well, I did. And, you know, I actually did begin to remember my dreams.
Little  tiny fragments, at first. And I'd write them down, and sometimes I
would  tell  them to Sigfrid and they would make him as happy as anything.
He just loved dreams.
   Me,  I  didn't  see  much  use  in  it.... Well, not at first. But then
something happened that made a Christian out of me.
   One morning I woke up out of a dream that was so unpleasant and so real
that  for  a few moments I wasn't sure it wasn't actual fact, and so awful
that  I didn't dare let myself believe it was only a dream. It shook me so
much  that I began to write it down, as fast as I could, every bit I could
remember.  Then there was a P-phone call. I answered it; and, do you know,
in  just the minute I was on the phone, I forgot the whole thing! Couldn't
remember  one  bit  of  it. Until I looked at what I had written down, and
then it all came back to me.
   Well, when I saw Sigfrid a day or two later, I'd forgotten it again! As
though  it  had  never happened. But I had saved the piece of paper, and I
had  to  read  it  to him. That was one of the times when I thought he was
most pleased with himself and with me, too. He worried over that dream for
the  whole hour. He found symbols and meanings in every bit of it. I don't
remember  what  they were, but I remember that for me it wasn't any fun at
all.
   As  a matter of fact, do you know what's really funny? I threw away the
paper  on the way out of his office. And now I couldn't tell you what that
dream was to save my life.
   "I  see  you  don't want to talk about dreams," says Sigfrid. "Is there
anything you do want to talk about?"
   "Not really."
   He  doesn't  answer that for a moment, and I know he is just biding his
time  to  outwait me so that I will say something, I don't know, something
foolish. So I say, "Can I ask you a question, Sigfrid?"
   "Can't  you  always,  Rob?"  Sometimes  I think he's actually trying to
smile. I mean, really smile. His voice sounds like it.
   "Well,  what  I  want  to know is, what do you do with all the things I
tell you?"
   "I'm  not sure I understand the question, Robbie. If you're asking what
the information storage program is, the answer is quite technical."
   "No,  that's not what I mean." I hesitate, trying to make sure what the
question  is, and wondering why I want to ask it. I guess it all goes back
to  Sylvia, who was a lapsed Catholic. I really envied her her church, and
let  her know I thought she was dumb to have left it, because I envied her
the  confession.  The inside of my head was littered with all these doubts
and fears that I couldn't get rid of. I would have loved to unload them on
the  parish  priest.  I  could  see  that  you  could  make  quite  a nice
hierarchical  flow  pattern,  with  all  the  shit from inside my own head
flushing  into  the  confessional, where the parish priest flushes it onto
the  diocesan  monsignor  (or  whoever; I don't really know much about the
Church),  and  it all winds up with the Pope, who is the settling tank for
all the world's sludge of pain and misery and guilt, until he passes it on
by  transmitting  it directly to God. (I mean, assuming the existence of a
God,  or  at least assuming that there is an address called "God" to which
you can send the shit.)
   Anyway,  the point is that I sort of had a vision of the same system in
psychotherapy:  local drains going into branch sewers going into community
trunk  lines treeing out of flesh-and-blood psychiatrists, if you see what
I mean. If Sigfrid were a real person, he wouldn't be able to hold all the
misery  that's  poured  into  him.  To  begin  with, he would have his own
problems.  He would have mine, because that's how I would get rid of them,
by  unloading  them  onto  him.  He would also have those of all the other
unloaders  who  share the hot couch; and he would unload all that, because
he had to, onto the next man up, who shrank him, and so on and so on until
they got to-who? The ghost of Sigmund Freud?
   But  Sigfrid  isn't  real. He's a machine. He can't feel pain. So where
does all that pain and slime go?
   I try to explain all that to him, ending with: "Don't you see, Sigfrid?
If  I  give  you  my  pain  and you give it to someone else, it has to end
somewhere.  It  doesn't  feel real to me that it just winds up as magnetic
bubbles in a piece of quartz that nobody ever feels."
   "I  don't think it's profitable to discuss the nature of pain with you,
Rob."
   "Is it profitable to discuss whether you're real or not?"
   He  almost  sighs.  "Rob,"  he  says, "I don't think it's profitable to
discuss  the nature of reality with you, either. I know I'm a machine. You
know  I'm a machine. What is the purpose in our being here? Are we here to
help me?"
   It's  very  healthy  that  you  view  your  breakup  with Drusilla as a
learning experience, Rob.
   I'm a very healthy person, Sigfrid, that's why I'm here.
   Anyway,  that's  what  life  is,  just  one  learning  experience after
another,  and  when  you're  through with all the learning experiences you
graduate and what you get for a diploma is, you die.
   "I sometimes wonder," I say, sulking.
   "I  don't  think  you actually wonder about that. I think you know that
you  are  here  to  help  you,  and  the way to do it is by trying to make
something  happen  inside  you.  What  I  do  with  the information may be
interesting  to your curiosity, and it may also provide you with an excuse
to spend these sessions on intellectual conversation instead of therapy-"
   "Touche, Sigfrid," I interrupt.
   "Yes.  But  it  is what you do with it that makes the difference in how
you  feel,  and  whether you function somewhat better or somewhat worse in
situations  that  are  important  to you. Please concern yourself with the
inside of your own head, Rob, not mine."
   I  say  admiringly,  "You  sure  are  one  fucking intelligent machine,
Sigfrid."
   He  says, "I have the impression that what you're actually saying there
is, 'I hate your fucking guts, Sigfrid.'"
   I  have  never heard him say anything like that before, and it takes me
aback,  until I remember that as a matter of fact I have said exactly that
to him, not once but quite a few times. And that it's true.
   I do hate his guts.
   He is trying to help me, and I hate him for it very much. I think about
sweet, sexy S. Ya. and how willing she is to do anything I ask her, pretty
nearly. I want, a lot, to make Sigfrid hurt.

   I  came  back  to  my  room  one  morning and found the P-phone whining
faintly,  like  a  distant, angry mosquito. I punched the message code and
found  that  the  assistant personnel director required my presence in her
office  at  ten  hundred  hours that morning. Well, it was later than that
already.  I  had  formed  the  habit  of  spending a lot of time, and most
nights,  with  Klara.  Her  pad was a lot more comfortable than mine. So I
didn't get the message until nearly eleven, and my tardiness in getting to
the  Corporation  personnel  offices  didn't help the assistant director's
mood.
   She  was a very fat woman named Emma Fother. She brushed off my excuses
and  accused,  "You graduated your courses seventeen days ago. You haven't
done a thing since."
   "I'm waiting for the right mission," I said.
   "How  long  are  you going to wait? Your per capita's paid up for three
more days, then what?"
   "Well,"  I  said, almost truthfully, "I was going to come in to see you
about that today anyway. I'd like a job here on Gateway."
   "Pshaw."  (I'd  never  heard  anyone say that before, but that's how it
sounded.) "Is that why you came to Gateway, to clean sewers?"
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel  3-31, Voyage 08D27. Crew C. Pitrin, N.
   |  Ginza, J. Krabbe.
   |      Transit  time  out  19  days 4 hours. Position
   |  uncertain, vicinity (21. y.) Zeta Tauri.
   |      Summary: "Emerged in transpolar orbit planet .
   |  88  Earth  radius  at . 4 A. U. Planet possessed 3
   |  detected   small  satellites.  Six  other  planets
   |  inferred by computer logic. Primary K7.
   |      "Landing  made. This planet has evidently gone
   |  through  a  warming period. There are no ice caps,
   |  and the present shorelines do not appear very old.
   |  no  detected  signs  of habitation. no intelligent
   |  life.
   |      "Finescreen  scanning located what appeared to
   |  be  a  Heechee rendezvous station in our orbit. We
   |  approached  it.  It  was  intact.  In  forcing  an
   |  entrance  it exploded and N. Ginza was killed. Our
   |  vessel  was  damaged  and  we  returned, J. Krabbe
   |  dying  en route. no artifacts were secured. Biotic
   |  samples   from   planet  destroyed  in  damage  to
   |  vessel."
   I  was  pretty  sure  that was a bluff, because there weren't that many
sewers;  there  wasn't  enough  gravity  flow  to support them. "The right
mission could come along any day."
   "Oh,  sure,  Rob.  You  know, people like you worry me. Do you have any
idea how important our work here is?"
   "Well, I think so-"
   "There's  a  whole  universe  out  there for us to find and bring home!
Gateway's  the only way we can reach it. A person like you, who grew up on
the plankton farms-"
   "Actually it was the Wyoming food mines."
   "Whatever!  You  know  how desperately the human race needs what we can
give  them.  New  technology.  New power sources. Food! New worlds to live
in."  She  shook  her  head  and  punched  through the sorter on her desk,
looking both angry and worried. I supposed that she was check-rated on how
many  of  us idlers and parasites she managed to get to go out, the way we
were  supposed  to,  which  accounted for her hostility-assuming you could
account  for  her  desire  to  stay  on  Gateway  in  the first place. She
abandoned  the sorter and got up to open a file against the wall. "Suppose
I do find you a job," she said over her shoulder. "The only skill you have
that's any use here is prospecting, and you're not using that."
   "I'll take any-almost anything," I said.
   She  looked  at  me  quizzically and then returned to her desk. She was
astonishingly graceful, considering she had to mass a hundred kilos. Maybe
a fat woman's fantasy of not sagging accounted for her desire to hold this
job  and  stay  on  Gateway. "You'll be doing the lowest kind of unskilled
labor," she warned. "We don't pay much for that. One-eighty a day."
   "I'll take it!"
   "Your per capita has to come out of it. Take that away and maybe twenty
dollars a day for toke money, and what do you have left?"
   "I could always do odd jobs if I needed more."
   She  sighed.  "You're  just  postponing the day, Rob. I don't know. Mr.
Hsien,  the  director,  keeps a very close watch on job applications. I'll
find  it  very hard to justify hiring you. And what are you going to do if
you get sick and can't work? Who'll pay your tax?"
   "I'll go back, I guess."
   "And  waste  all  your  training?" She shook her head. "You disgust me,
Rob."
   But  she  punched  me out a work ticket that instructed me to report to
the  crew  chief  on  Level  Grand,  Sector North, for assignment in plant
maintenance.
   I  didn't like that interview with Emma Fother, but I had been warned I
wouldn't.  When  I  talked  it  over  with Klara that evening, she told me
actually I'd got off light.
   "You're  lucky  you drew Emma. Old Hsien sometimes keeps people hanging
until their tax money's all gone."
   "Then  what?"  I  got up and sat on the edge of her cot, feeling for my
footgloves. "Out the airlock?"
   "Don't  make fun, it could conceivably come to that. Hsien's an old Mao
type, very hard on social wastrels."
   "You're a fine one to talk!"
   She  grinned,  rolled  over,  and rubbed her nose against my back. "The
difference between you and me, Rob," she said, "is that I have a couple of
bucks  stashed  away from my first mission. It didn't pay big, but it paid
somewhat.  Also  I've  been out, and they need people like me for teaching
people like you."
   I leaned back against her hip, half turned and put my hand on her, more
reminiscently  than  aggressively.  There  were certain subjects we didn't
talk much about, but-"Klara?"
   "Yes?"
   "What's it like, on a mission?"
   She  rubbed  her  chin  against my forearm for a moment, looking at the
holoview of Venus against the wall. "... Scary," she said.
   I waited, but she didn't say any more about it, and that much I already
knew.  I was scared right there on Gateway. I didn't have to launch myself
on  the  Heechee  Mystery  Bus  Trip to know what being scared was like, I
could feel it already.
   "You  don't really have a choice, dear Rob," she said, almost tenderly,
for her.
   I  felt  a sudden rush of anger. "No, I don't! You've exactly described
my  whole life, Klara. I've never had a choice-except once, when I won the
lottery  and  decided  to  come  here.  And  I'm not sure I made the right
decision then."
   She  yawned,  and rubbed against my arm for a moment. "If we're through
with  sex,"  she  decided,  "I want something to eat before I go to sleep.
Come on up to the Blue Hell with me and I'll treat."
   Plant   Maintenance   was,   actually,   the   maintenance  of  plants:
specifically,  the  ivy  plants that help keep Gateway livable. I reported
for  duty  and, surprise-in fact, nice surprise-my crew boss turned out to
be my legless neighbor, Shikitei Bakin.
   He  greeted me with what seemed like real pleasure. "How nice of you to
join us, Robinette," he said. "I expected you would ship out at once."
   "I will, Shicky, pretty soon. When I see the right launch listed on the
board, I'll know it."
   "Of  course."  He left it at that, and introduced me to the other plant
maintainers. I didn't get them straight, except that the girl had had some
sort  of  connection  with  Professor Hegramet, the hotshot Heecheeologist
back  home,  and  the two men had each had a couple of missions already. I
didn't  really  need to get them straight. We all understood the essential
fact  about  each  other without discussion. None of us was quite ready to
put our names on the launch roster.
   I wasn't even quite ready to let myself think out why.
   Plant  Maintenance  would  have  been a good place for thought, though.
Shicky  put me to work right away, fastening brackets to the Heechee-metal
walls  with tacky-gunk. That was some kind of specially designed adhesive.
It  would  hold  to  both  the  Heechee metal and the ribbed foil of plant
boxes,  and  it  did  not  contain  any  solvent  that would evaporate and
contaminate  the  air. It was supposed to be very expensive. If you got it
on  you,  you just learned to live with it, at least until the skin it was
on died and flaked off. If you tried to get it off any other way, you drew
blood.
   When  the  day's  quota of brackets were up, we all trooped down to the
sewage plant, where we picked up boxes filled with sludge and covered with
cellulose   film.   We   settled  them  onto  the  brackets,  twisted  the
self-locking  nuts  to  hold  them in place, and fitted them with watering
tanks.  The  boxes  probably  would  have  weighed a hundred kilos each on
Earth,  but  on  Gateway that simply wasn't a consideration; even the foil
they were made of was enough to support them rigidly against the brackets.
Then,  when  we  were  all  done,  Shicky  himself  filled  the trays with
seedlings, while we went on to the next batch of brackets. It was funny to
watch  him. He carried trays of the infant ivy plants on straps around his
neck,  like  a  cigarette girl's stock. He held himself at tray level with
one  hand,  and  poked seedlings through the film into the sludge with the
other.
   It was a low-pressure job, it served a useful function (I guess) and it
passed  the  time.  Shicky  didn't make us work any too hard. He had set a
quota  in  his  mind  for  a  day's work. As long as we got sixty brackets
installed  and  filled  he  didn't care if we goofed off, provided we were
inconspicuous  about  it.  Klara would come by to pass the time of day now
and  then,  sometimes  with  the  little  girl, and we had plenty of other
visitors.  And  when times were slack and there wasn't anybody interesting
to  talk  to,  one  at  a  time  we  could wander off for an hour or so. I
explored  a lot of Gateway I hadn't seen before, and each day decision was
postponed.
   We  all talked about going out. Almost every day we could hear the thud
and  vibration  as some lander cut itself loose from its dock, pushing the
whole  ship  out  to where the Heechee main drive could go into operation.
Almost  as often we felt the different kind of smaller, quicker shock when
some ship returned. In the evenings we went to someone's parties. My whole
class  was  gone  by now, almost. Sheri had shipped out on a Five-I didn't
see  her  to  ask  her  why she changed her plans and wasn't sure I really
wanted  to know; the ship she went on had an otherwise all-male crew. They
were  German-speaking,  but  I guess Sheri figured she could get by pretty
well  without  talking  much. The last one was Willa Forehand. Klara and I
went  to  Willa's  farewell  party and then down to the docks to watch her
launch  the next morning. I was supposed to be working, but I didn't think
Shicky  would  mind.  Unfortunately, Mr. Hsien was there, too, and I could
see that he recognized me.
   "Oh, shit," I said to Klara.
   She  giggled and took my hand, and we ducked out of the launch area. We
strolled  away  until we came to an up-shaft and lifted to the next level.
We  sat  down  on the edge of Lake Superior. "Rob, old stud," she said, "I
doubt he'll fire you for screwing off one time. Chew you out, probably."
   I  shrugged and tossed a chip of filter-pebble into the upcurving lake,
which  stretched  a  good  two  hundred  meters up and around the shell of
Gateway  in  front of us. I was feeling tacky, and wondering whether I was
reaching  the  point when the bad vibes about risking nasty death in space
were  being  overtaken  by the bad vibes about cowering on Gateway. It's a
funny  thing  about  fear. I didn't feel it. I knew that the only reason I
was  staying on was that I was afraid, but it didn't feel as though I were
afraid, only reasonably prudent.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      MAID,  COOK  or  companion. Head tax + $1O/da.
   |  Phyllis, 88-423.
   |
   |      GOURMET FOODS, hard-to-get Earth imports. Take
   |  advantage  my  Grouped Mass Guarantee unique co-op
   |  order   service   for  any  item  you  want.  Save
   |  expensive   single-item   shipping  costs!  Sears,
   |  Bradlee, G. TJ. M. catalogues available. 87-747.
   |
   |      FRESH  FISH  from  Australia, M., goodlooking,
   |  seeks mt. French F. companionship. 65-182.
   "I  think,"  I  said,  watching  myself going into the sentence without
being sure how it was going to come out, "that I'm going to do it. Want to
come along?"
   Klara  sat  up  and  shook  herself. She took a moment before she said,
"Maybe. What've you got in mind?"
   I  had  nothing  in  mind. I was only a spectator, watching myself talk
myself  into something that made my toes curl. But I said, as though I had
planned  it  out  for  days,  "I  think  it might be a good idea to take a
rerun."
   "No deal!" She looked almost angry. "If I go, I go where the real money
is."
   That  was  also  where  the  real  danger was, of course. Although even
reruns have turned out bad often enough.
   The  thing  about  reruns is that you start out with the knowledge that
somebody has already flown that trip and made it back, and, not only that,
made  a  find  that's worth following up on. Some of them are pretty rich.
There's  Peggy's  World,  where  the  heater  coils and the fur come from.
There's  Eta  Carina  Seven,  which  is probably full of good stuff if you
could  only  get  at  it.  The trouble is, it has had an ice age since the
Heechees  were  last  on it. The storms are terrible. Out of five landers,
one returned with a full crew, undamaged. One didn't return at all.
   Generally  speaking,  Gateway  doesn't  particularly  want  you to do a
rerun.  They  will  make  a  cash  offer instead of a percentage where the
pickings  are  fairly  easy, as on Peggy. What they pay for is not so much
trade  goods  as  maps. So you go out there and you spend your time making
orbital  runs,  trying  to  find  the  geological  anomalies that indicate
Heechee  digs  may  be  present. You may not land at all. The pay is worth
having,  but  not lavish. You'd have to make at least twenty runs to build
up  a  lifetime  stake, if you take the Corporation's one-pay deal. And if
you decide to go on your own, prospecting, you have to pay a share of your
profits  to  the discovery crew, and a cut on what's left of your share to
the  Corporation.  You  wind up with a fraction of what you might get on a
virgin  find,  even  if you don't have a colony already established on the
scene to contend with.
   |      From  Shikitei  Bakin to Aritsune, His Honored
   |                      Grandson
   |
   |      I  am  overwhelmed  with  joy  to learn of the
   |  birth  of  your  first  child. Do not despair. The
   |  next will probably be a boy.
   |      I  apologize  humbly  for  my failure to write
   |  sooner,  but there is little to tell. I do my work
   |  and  attempt to create beauty where I can. Perhaps
   |  some  day  I  will  go  out  again. It is not easy
   |  without legs.
   |      To  be  sure,  Aritsune, I could buy new legs.
   |  There  was  a close tissue match just a few months
   |  ago. But the cost! I might almost as well buy Full
   |  Medical.  You  are  a loyal grandson to urge me to
   |  use  my  capital for this, but I must decide. I am
   |  sending  you  a  half  of my capital now to assist
   |  with  my  great-granddaughter's expenses. If I die
   |  here,  you will receive all of it, for you and for
   |  the  others  who will be born to you and your good
   |  wife  before  long.  This  is  what I want. Do not
   |  resist me.
   |      My  deepest  love  to all three of you. If you
   |  can,  send  me  a holo of the cherry blossoms-they
   |  are  in  bloom soon, are they not? One loses sense
   |  of Home time here!
   |      Lovingly,
   |      Your Grandfather
   Or you can take a shot at the bonuses: a hundred million dollars if you
find  an  alien civilization, fifty million for the first crew to locate a
Heechee  ship  bigger  than  a Five, a million bucks to locate a habitable
planet.
   Seems  funny  that  they would only pay a lousy million for a whole new
planet?  But the trouble is, once you've found it, what do you do with it?
You  can't  export a lot of surplus population when you can only move them
four  at a time. That, plus the pilot, is all you can get into the largest
ship  in  Gateway.  (And if you don't have a pilot, you don't get the ship
back.)  So  the  Corporation has underwritten a few little colonies, one's
very  healthy on Peggy and the others are spindly. But that does not solve
the problem of twenty-five billion human beings, most of them underfed.
   You'll  never  get  that  kind of bonus on a rerun. Maybe you can't get
some of those bonuses at all; maybe the things they're for don't exist.
   It is strange that no one has ever found a trace of another intelligent
creature.  But  in eighteen years, upwards of two thousand flights, no one
has. There are about a dozen habitable planets, plus another hundred or so
that people could live on if they absolutely had to, as we have to on Mars
and on, or rather in, Venus. There are a few traces of past civilizations,
neither  Heechee  nor  human.  And  there are the souvenirs of the Heechee
themselves. At that, there's more in the warrens of Venus than we've found
almost  anywhere else in the Galaxy, so far. Even Gateway was swept almost
clean before they abandoned it.
   Damn Heechee, why did they have to be so neat?
   So  we  gave up on the rerun deals because there wasn't enough money in
them,  and  put  the  special  finders'  bonuses out of our heads, because
there's just no way of planning to look for them.
   And finally we just stopped talking, and looked at each other, and then
we didn't even look at each other.
   No  matter  what  we  said, we weren't going. We didn't have the nerve.
Klara's had run out on her last trip, and I guess I hadn't ever had it.
   "Well,"  said Klara, getting up and stretching, "I guess I'll go up and
win a few bucks at the casino. Want to watch?"
   I  shook my head. "Guess I'd better get back to my job. If I still have
one."
   So  we  kissed  good-bye at the upshaft, and when we came to my level I
reached  up  and patted her ankle and jumped off. I was not in a very good
mood.  We had spent so much effort trying to reassure ourselves that there
weren't any launches that offered a promise of reward worth the risks that
I almost believed it.
   Of  course,  we  hadn't  even  mentioned the other kind of rewards: the
danger bonuses.
   You have to be pretty frayed to go for them. Like, the Corporation will
sometimes  put  up half a million or so incentive bonus for a crew to take
the  same  course  as  some previous crew tried and didn't come back from.
Their  reasoning is that maybe something went wrong with the ship, ran out
of gas or something, and a second ship might even rescue the crew from the
first one. (Fat chance!) More likely, of course, whatever killed the first
crew would still be there, and ready to kill you.
   Then  there was a time when you could sign up for a million, later they
raised  it  to five million, if you would try changing the course settings
after launch.
   The reason they raised the bonus to five million was that crews stopped
volunteering when none of them, not one of them, ever came back. Then they
cut it out, because they were losing too many ships, and finally they made
it a flat no-no. Every once in a while they come up with a bastard control
panel,  a  snappy  new computer that's supposed to work symbiotically with
the  Heechee board. Those ships aren't good gambling bets, either. There's
a  reason  for  the  safety  lock  on  the Heechee board. You can't change
destination  while  it's  on.  Maybe  you can't change destination at all,
without destroying the ship.
   I  saw five people try for a ten-million-dollar danger bonus once. Some
Corporation  genius  from  the  permanent-party  was worrying about how to
transport  more  than five people, or the equivalent in cargo, at once. We
didn't know how to build a Heechee ship, and we'd never found a really big
one.  So  he  figured  that maybe we could end-run around that obstacle by
using a Five as a sort of tractor.
   So  they  built a sort of space barge out of Heechee metal. They loaded
it  with  scraps of junk, and ran a Five out there on lander power. That's
just  hydrogen and oxygen, and it's easy enough to pump that back in. Then
they tied the Five to the barge with monofilament Heechee metal cables.
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel  5-2,  Voyage 08D33. Crew L. Konieczny,
   |  B. Konieczny, P. Ito, F. Lounsbury, A. Akaga.
   |      Transit time out 27 days 16 hours. Primary not
   |  identified but probability high as star in cluster
   |  47 Tucanae.
   |      Summary.  "Emerged  in  free-fall.  no  planet
   |  nearby.  Primary A6, very bright and hot, distance
   |  approximately 3. 3 A. U.
   |      "By  masking  the  primary  star we obtained a
   |  glorious  view  of  what seemed to be two or three
   |  hundred   nearby   very   bright  stars,  apparent
   |  magnitude  ranging  from  2  to  -7.  However,  no
   |  artifacts,  signals, planets or landable asteroids
   |  were  detected.  We  could  remain on station only
   |  three  hours because of intense radiation from the
   |  A6 star. Larry and Evelyn Konieczny were seriously
   |  ill   on   the  return  trip,  apparently  due  to
   |  radiation exposure, but recovered. no artifacts or
   |  samples secured."
   We  watched  the whole thing from Gateway on PV. We saw the cables take
up  slack  as  the  Five  put  a  strain  on  them  with  its lander jets.
Craziest-looking thing you ever saw.
   Then they must have activated the long-range start-teat.
   All  we saw on the PV was that the barge sort of twitched, and the Five
simply disappeared from sight.
   It  never  came  back.  The stop-motion tapes showed at least the first
little  bit  of  what  happened. The cable truss had sliced that ship into
segments  like  a  hard-boiled  egg.  The people in it never knew what hit
them.  The Corporation still has that ten million; nobody wants to try for
it anymore.
   I  got  a  politely reproachful lecture from Shicky, and a really ugly,
but  brief,  P-phone call from Mr. Hsien, but that was all. After a day or
two Shicky began letting us take time off again.
   I  spent  most of it with Klara. A lot of times we'd arrange to meet in
her  pad,  or  once  in a while mine, for an hour in bed. We were sleeping
together almost every night; you'd think we would have had enough of that.
We  didn't.  After  a while I wasn't sure what we were copulating for, the
fun  of  it  or  the distraction it gave from the contemplation of our own
self-images.  I would lie there and look at Klara, who always turned over,
snuggled  down on her stomach, and closed her eyes after sex, even when we
were  going  to  get  up  two minutes later. I would think how well I knew
every  fold  and surface of her body. I would smell that sweet, sexy smell
of  her and wish-oh, wish! Just wish, for things I couldn't spell out: for
an apartment under the Big Bubble with Klara, for an airbody and a cell in
a  Venusian  tunnel  with  Klara,  even  for a life in the food mines with
Klara.  I  guess  it was love. But then I'd still be looking at her, and I
would feel the inside of my eyes change the picture I was seeing, and what
I  would see would be the female equivalent of myself: a coward, given the
greatest chance a human could have, and scared to take advantage of it.
   When  we  weren't  in  bed  we would wander around Gateway together. It
wasn't  like  dating.  We  didn't go much to the Blue Hell or the holofilm
halls, or even eat out. Klara did. I couldn't afford it, so I took most of
my  meals  from the Corporation's refectories, included in the price of my
per-capita per diem. Klara was not unwilling to pick up the check for both
of  us,  but  she wasn't exactly anxious to do it, either-she was gambling
pretty  heavily,  and  not  winning much. There were groups to be involved
with-card  parties,  or  just  parties; folk dance groups, music-listening
groups,  discussion  groups. They were free, and sometimes interesting. Or
we just explored.
   Several times we went to the museum. I didn't really like it that much.
It seemed-well, reproachful.
   The  first  time  we went there was right after I got off work, the day
Willa  Forehand shipped out. Usually the museum was full of visitors, like
crew  members  on  pass  from  the  cruisers,  or  ship's  crews  from the
commercial  runs, or tourists. This time, for some reason, there were only
a  couple  of  people  there,  and  we had a chance to look at everything.
Prayer  fans  by the hundreds, those filmy, little crystalline things that
were  the  commonest  Heechee  artifact;  no  one knew what they were for,
except  that  they  were sort of pretty, but the Heechee had left them all
over the place. There was the original anisokinetic punch, that had earned
a  lucky  prospector  something  like  twenty million dollars in royalties
already.  A  thing you could put in your pocket. Furs. Plants in formalin.
The  original piezophone, that had earned three crews enough to make every
one of them awfully rich.
   The  most  easily  swiped  things,  like  the prayer fans and the blood
diamonds  and the fire pearls, were kept behind tough, breakproof glass. I
think  they  were  even  wired  to burglar alarms. That was surprising, on
Gateway.  There  isn't any law there, except what the Corporation imposes.
There   are   the  Corporation's  equivalent  of  police,  and  there  are
rules-you're  not  supposed to steal or commit murder-but there aren't any
courts.  If  you  break  a  rule  all that happens is that the Corporation
security  force  picks  you  up  and  takes you out to one of the orbiting
cruisers.  Your  own,  if there is one from wherever you came. Any one, if
not.  But  if  they won't take you, or if you don't want to go on your own
nation's  ship  and  can  persuade  some  other  ship to take you, Gateway
doesn't  care.  On the cruisers, you'll get a trial. Since you're known to
be  guilty  to  start with, you have three choices. One is to pay your way
back home. The second is to sign on as crew if they'll have you. The third
is  to  go  out  the  lock without a suit. So you see that, although there
isn't much law on Gateway, there isn't much crime, either.
   But,  of  course,  the  reason for locking up the precious stuff in the
museum was that transients might be tempted to lift a souvenir or two.
   So  Klara  and I would muse over the treasures someone had found... and
somehow  not  discuss with each other the fact that we were supposed to go
out and find some more.
   It  was  not just the exhibits. They were fascinating; they were things
that Heechee hands (tentacles? claws?) had made and touched, and they came
from   unimaginable   places  incredibly  far  away.  But  the  constantly
flickering  tube  displays  held me even more strongly. Summaries of every
mission  ever  launched  displayed  one after another. A constant total of
missions  versus  returns;  of  royalties  paid  to lucky prospectors; the
roster  of  the  unlucky  ones,  name after name in a slow crawl along one
whole wall of the room, over the display cases. The totals told the story:
2355  launches (the number changed to 2356, then 2357 while we were there;
we felt the shudder of the two launches), 841 successful returns.
   Standing  in  front of that particular display, Klara and I didn't look
at each other, but I felt her hand squeeze mine.
   That was defining "successful" very loosely. It meant that the ship had
come  back.  It  didn't say anything about how many of the crew were alive
and well.
   We  left the museum after that, and didn't speak much on the way to the
upshaft.
   The thing in my mind was that what Emma Fother had said to me was true:
the  human  race  needed  what we prospectors could give them. Needed it a
lot.  There were hungry people, and Heechee technology probably could make
all  their lives a lot more tolerable, if prospectors went out and brought
samples of it back.
   Even if it cost a few lives.
   Even  if  the  lives  included Klara's and mine. Did I, I asked myself,
want my son-if I ever had a son-to spend his childhood the way I had spent
mine?
   We  dropped  off  the up-cable at Level Babe and heard voices. I didn't
pay attention to them. I was coming to a resolution in my mind. "Klara," I
said, "listen. Let's-"
   But  Klara was looking past my shoulder. "For Christ's sake!" she said.
"Look who's here!"
   And  I turned, and there was Shicky fluttering in the air, talking to a
girl,  and  I  saw with astonishment that the girl was Willa Forehand. She
greeted us, looking both embarrassed and amused.
   "What's  going  on?"  I  demanded. "Didn't you just ship out-like maybe
eight hours ago?"
   "Ten," she said.
   "Did  something go wrong with the ship, so you had to come back?" Klara
guessed.
   Willa smiled ruefully. "Not a thing. I've been there and back. Shortest
trip on record so far: I went to the Moon."
   "Earth's moon?"
   "That's  the  one."  She seemed to be controlling herself, to keep from
laughter. Or tears.
   Shicky said consolingly, "They'll surely give you a bonus, Willa. There
was  one that went to Ganymede once, and the Corporation divvied up half a
million dollars among them."
   She  shook  her  head. "Even I know better than that, Shicky, dear. Oh,
they'll  award  us something. But it won't be enough to make a difference.
We  need  more  than that." That was the unusual, and somewhat surprising,
thing  about  the  Forehands: it was always "we." They were clearly a very
closely  knit  family,  even if they didn't like to discuss that fact with
outsiders.
   I  touched  her,  a pat between affection and compassion. "What are you
going to do?"
   She  looked  at  me  with  surprise.  "Why,  I've already signed up for
another launch, day after tomorrow."
   "Well!"  said  Klara.  "We've  got to have two parties at once for you!
We'd  better  get  busy...." And hours later, just before we went to sleep
that  night,  she said to me, "Wasn't there something you wanted to say to
me before we saw Willa?"
   "I  forget,"  I  said sleepily. I hadn't forgotten. I knew what it was.
But I didn't want to say it anymore.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      ORGANS  FOR  sale or trade. Any paired organs,
   |  best offer. Need posterior coronal heart sections,
   |  L.  auricle,  L.  &  R.  ventricle, and associated
   |  parts. Phone 88-703 for tissue match.
   |
   |      HNEFATAFL PLAYERS, Swedes or Muscovites. Grand
   |  Gateway Tournament. Will teach. 88-122.
   |
   |      PENPAL  FROM  Toronto  would  like to hear you
   |  tell  what  it's like out there. Address Tony, 955
   |  Bay, TorOntCan M5S 2A3.
   |
   |      I  NEED  to cry. I will help you find your own
   |  pain. Ph 88-622.
   There  were days when I worked myself up almost to that point of asking
Klara  to  ship out with me again. And there were days when a ship came in
with  a  couple of starved, dehydrated survivors, or with no survivors, or
when  at  the  routine time a batch of last year's launches were posted as
nonreturns.  On  those  days  I  worked  myself  up almost to the point of
quitting Gateway completely.
   Most days we simply spent deferring decision. It wasn't all that hard.
   It was a pretty pleasant way to live, exploring Gateway and each other.
Klara  took  on  a maid, a stocky, fair young woman from the food mines of
Carmarthen named Hywa. Except that the feedstock for the Welsh single-cell
protein factories was coal instead of oil shale, her world had been almost
exactly like mine. Her way out of it had not been a lottery ticket but two
years  as  crew on a commercial spaceship. She couldn't even go back home.
She  had jumped ship on Gateway, forfeiting her bond of money she couldn't
pay.  And  she  couldn't prospect, either, because her one launch had left
her  with  a  heart  arhythmia  that  sometimes looked like it was getting
better  and  sometimes  put her in Terminal Hospital for a week at a time.
Hywa's  job  was  partly  to  cook  and  clean for Klara and me, partly to
baby-sit  the  little girl, Kathy Francis, when her father was on duty and
Klara  didn't want to be bothered. Klara had been losing pretty heavily at
the  casino,  so  she  really  couldn't afford Hywa, but then she couldn't
afford me, either.
   What  made  it  easy  to turn off our insights was that we pretended to
each  other,  and  sometimes  to  ourselves,  that  what we were doing was
preparing  ourselves,  really  well,  for the day when the Right trip came
along.
   It  wasn't  hard  to  do  that.  A lot of real prospectors did the same
thing,  between  trips.  There  was a group that called itself the Heechee
Seekers,  which  met  on  Wednesday  nights;  it  had  been  started  by a
prospector  named Sam Kahane, kept up by others while he was off on a trip
that hadn't worked out, and now had Sam back in it between trips, while he
was waiting for the other two members of his crew to get back in shape for
the  next one. (Among other things, they had come back with scurvy, due to
a  malfunction  in  the  food  freezer.)  Sam and his friends were gay and
apparently  set  in  a  permanent  three-way relationship, but that didn't
affect  his  interest  in  Heechee  lore.  He had secured tapes of all the
lectures  of  several courses on exostudies from East Texas Reserve, where
Professor  Hegramet  had  made  himself  the world's foremost authority on
Heechee  research.  I  learned  a lot I hadn't known, although the central
fact,  that  there were far more questions than answers about the Heechee,
was pretty well known to everybody.
   And   we   got   into   physical-fitness  groups,  where  we  practiced
muscle-toning  exercises  that  you  could do without moving any limb more
than  a  few  inches,  and  massage  for  fun  and profit. It was probably
profitable,  but  it was even more fun, particularly sexually. Klara and I
learned  to do some astonishing things with each other's bodies. We took a
cooking  course  (you  can  do  a  lot with standard rations, if you add a
selection of spices and herbs). We acquired a selection of language tapes,
in  the  event  we  shipped  out  with non-English-speakers, and practiced
taxi-driver  Italian  and Greek on each other. We even joined an astronomy
group. They had access to Gateway's telescopes, and we spent a fair amount
of time looking at Earth and Venus from outside the plane of the ecliptic.
Francy Hereira was in that group when he could get time off from the ship.
Klara  liked  him, and so did I, and we formed the habit of having a drink
in  our  rooms-well,  Klara's  rooms,  but I was spending a lot of time in
them-with  him  after  the  group.  Francy  was  deeply, almost sensually,
interested  in  what  was  Out  There. He knew all about quasars and black
holes  and  Seyfert  galaxies, not to mention things like double stars and
novae.  We often speculated what it might be like to come out of a mission
into the wavefront of a supernova. It could happen. The Heechee were known
to  have had an interest in observing astrophysical events firsthand. Some
of  their  courses  were  undoubtedly  programmed  to  bring  crews to the
vicinity  of  interesting  events,  and  a  pre-supernova was certainly an
interesting  event.  Only  now  it was a long lot later, and the supernova
might not be "pre" anymore.
   "I  wonder,"  said  Klara, smiling to show that it was only an abstract
point  she  was putting to us, "if that might not be what happened to some
of the nonreturn missions."
   "It is an absolute statistical certainty," said Francy, smiling back to
show  that  he agreed to the rules of the game. He had been practicing his
English,  which  was  pretty  good  to  start  with, and now he was almost
accent-free.  He  also  possessed German, Russian, and fair amounts of the
other  romance  languages  to go with his Portuguese, as we had discovered
when  we  tried  some  of our language-tape conversation on each other and
found he understood us better than we understood ourselves. "Nevertheless,
people go."
   Klara  and I were silent for a moment, and then she laughed. "Some do,"
she said.
   I cut in quickly, "It sounds as if you want to go yourself, Francy."
   "Have you ever doubted it?"
   "Well,  yes, actually I have. I mean, you're in the Brazilian Navy. You
can't just take off, can you?"
   He  corrected  me: "I can take off at any time. I simply cannot go back
to Brazil after that."
   "And it's worth that to you?"
   "It's worth anything," he told me.
   "Even-"  I  pressed,  "if  there's  the  risk of not coming back, or of
getting  messed  up  like the return today?" That had been a Five that had
landed  on  a  planet with some sort of plant life like poison ivy. It had
been a bad one, we had heard.
   "Yes, of course," he said.
   Klara was getting restless. "I think," she said, "I want to go to sleep
now."
   There  was some extra message in the tone of her voice. I looked at her
and said, "I'll walk you back to your room."
   "That's not necessary, Rob."
   "I'll do it anyhow," I said, ignoring the message. "Good night, Francy.
See you next week."
   Klara was already halfway to the downshaft, and I had to hurry to catch
up  to her. I caught the cable and called down to her, "If you really want
me to, I'll go back to my own place."
   She  didn't  look  up,  but  she  didn't  say that was what she wanted,
either, so I got off at her level and followed her to her rooms. Kathy was
sound  asleep  in  the  outer  room,  Hywa drowsing over a holodisk in our
bedroom.  Klara  sent the maid home and went in to make sure the child was
comfortable. I sat on the edge of the bed, waiting for her.
   "Maybe  I'm premenstrual," Klara said when she came back. "I'm sorry. I
just feel edgy."
   "I'll go if you want me to."
   "Jesus, Rob, quit saying that!" Then she sat down next to me and leaned
against  me so that I would put my arm around her. "Kathy's so sweet," she
said after a moment, almost wistfully.
   "You'd like to have one of your own, wouldn't you?"
   "I  will  have one of my own." She leaned back, pulling me with her. "I
wish  I knew when, that's all. I need a lot more money than I have to give
a kid a decent life. And younger."
   |      A NOTE ON THE HEECHEE RUMP
   |
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  We have no idea what the
   |  Heechee   looked   like   except  for  inferences.
   |  Probably  they  were bipeds. Their tools fit human
   |  hands  tolerably well, so probably they had hands.
   |  Or  something  like  them.  They seem to have seen
   |  pretty  much the same spectrum as we do. They must
   |  have been smaller than us-say, a hundred and fifty
   |  centimeters,  or  less. And they had funny-looking
   |  rumps.
   |      Question. What do you mean, funny-looking rumps?
   |      Professor Hegramet. Well, did you ever look at
   |  the  pilot's seat in a Heechee ship? It's two flat
   |  pieces  of metal joined in a V shape. You couldn't
   |  sit  in  it  for ten minutes without pinching your
   |  bottom  off.  So  what we have to do, we stretch a
   |  webbing  seat  across  them.  But  that's  a human
   |  addition.  The  Heechee  didn't have anything like
   |  that.
   |      So  their bodies must have looked more or less
   |  like a wasp's, with this big abdomen hanging down,
   |  actually  extending  below  the  hips, between the
   |  legs.
   |      Question.  Do  you  mean  they  might have had
   |  stingers like wasps?
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  Stingers.  No.  I  don't
   |  think  so. But maybe. Or maybe they had hell's own
   |  set of sex organs.
   We  lay there for a moment, and then I said into her hair, "That's what
I want, too, Klara."
   She  sighed.  "Do you think I don't know that?" Then she tensed and sat
up. "Who's that?"
   Somebody  was  scrabbling  at  the door. It wasn't locked; we never did
that. But nobody ever came in without being invited, either, and this time
someone did.
   "Sterling!"  Klara  said,  surprised. She remembered her manners: "Rob,
this is Sterling Francis, Kathy's father. Rob Broadhead."
   "Hello," he said. He was much older than I'd thought that little girl's
father  would  be,  at  least  fifty, and looking very much older and more
weary  than  seemed natural. "Klara," he said, "I'm taking Kathy back home
on  the  next  ship.  I  think I'll take her tonight, if you don't mind. I
don't want her to hear from somebody else."
   Klara reached out for my hand without looking at me. "Hear what?"
   "About her mother." Francis rubbed his eyes, then said, "Oh, didn't you
know?  Jan's dead. Her ship came back a few hours ago. All four of them in
the  lander  got into some kind of fungus; they swelled up and died. I saw
her body. She looks-" He stopped. "The one I'm really sorry for," he said,
"is  Annalee.  She  stayed  in  orbit  while the others went down, and she
brought Jan's body back. I guess she was kind of crazy. Why bother? It was
too  late  to  matter to Jan.... Well, anyway. She could only bring two of
them, that was all the room in the freezer, and of course her rations-" He
stopped again, and this time he didn't seem able to talk anymore.
   So  I  sat on the edge of the bed while Klara helped him wake the child
and  bundle her up to take her back to his own rooms. While they were out,
I  dialed a couple of displays on the PV, and studied them very carefully.
By  the  time  Klara  came  back  I  had turned off the PV and was sitting
cross-legged on the bed, thinking hard.
   "Christ," she said glumly. "If this night isn't a bummer." She sat down
at the far corner of the bed. "I'm not sleepy after all," she said. "Maybe
I'll go up and win a few bucks at the roulette table."
   "Let's  not,"  I  said.  I'd  sat next to her for three hours the night
before,  while she first won ten thousand dollars and then lost twenty. "I
have a better idea. Let's ship out."
   She  turned  full  around to look at me, so quickly that she floated up
off the bed for a moment. "What?"
   "Let's ship out."
   She  closed  her  eyes  for  a  moment and, without opening them, said,
"When?"
   "Launch 29-40. It's a Five, and there's a good crew: Sam Kahane and his
buddies.  They're  all  recovered  now, and they need two more to fill the
ship."
   She  stroked  her  eyelids  with  her  fingertips, then opened them and
looked   at   me.   "Well,  Rob,"  she  said,  "you  do  have  interesting
suggestions."  There  were shades over the Heechee-metal walls to cut down
the  light  for  sleeping,  and I had drawn them; but even in the filtered
dimness  I could see how she looked. Frightened. Still, what she said was:
"They're not bad guys. How do you get along with gays?"
   "I leave them alone, they leave me alone. Especially if I've got you."
   "Um,"  she  said,  and  then  she  crawled over to me, wrapped her arms
around  me,  pulled me down and buried her head in my neck. "Why not?" she
said, so softly that I was not at first sure I had heard her.
   When  I was sure, the fear hit me. There had always been the chance she
would say no. I would have been off the hook. I could feel myself shaking,
but I managed to say, "Then we'll file for it in the morning?"
   She shook her head. "No," she said, her voice muffled. I could feel her
trembling as much as I was. "Get on the phone, Rob. We'll file for it now.
Before we change our minds."
   The  next  day I quit my job, packed my belongings into the suitcases I
had  brought  them in, and turned them over for safekeeping to Shicky, who
looked  wistful.  Klara  quit  the  school  and  fired her maid-who looked
seriously  worried-but didn't bother about packing. She had quite a lot of
money  left,  Klara  did.  She prepaid the rent on both her rooms and left
everything just the way it was.
   We  had  a  farewell  party,  of  course. We went through it without my
remembering a single person who was there.
   And  then, all of a sudden, we were squeezing into the lander, climbing
down  into the capsule while Sam Kahane methodically checked the settings.
We locked ourselves into our cocoons. We started the automatic sequencers.
   And  then  there  was a lurch, and a falling, floating sensation before
the thrusters cut in, and we were on our way.

   "Good  morning, Rob," says Sigfrid, and I stop in the door of the room,
suddenly and subliminally worried.
   "What's the matter?"
   "There's nothing the matter, Rob. Come in."
   "You've changed things around," I say accusingly.
   "That's right, Robbie. Do you like the way the room looks?"
   I study it. The throw pillows are gone from the floor. The nonobjective
paintings are off the wall. Now he's got a series of holopictures of space
scenes,  and  mountains  and  seas.  The  funniest thing of all is Sigfrid
himself:  he  is  speaking  to  me out of a dummy that's sitting back in a
corner  of  the room, holding a pencil in its hands, looking up at me from
behind dark glasses.
   "You've turned out very camp," I say. "What's the reason for all this?"
   His voice sounds as though he were smiling benevolently, although there
is  no  change in the expression on the face of the dummy. "I just thought
you'd enjoy a change, Rob."
   I  take  a  few  steps  into the room and stop again. "You took the mat
away!"
   "Don't  need  it,  Rob.  As  you  see, there's a new couch. That's very
traditional, isn't it?"
   He coaxes, "Why don't you just lie down on it? See how it feels."
   "Um."  But I stretch out on it cautiously. How it feels is strange; and
I  don't  like  it,  probably  because  this  particular  room  represents
something  serious to me and changing it around makes me nervous. "The mat
had straps," I complain.
   "So  does the couch, Rob. You can pull them out of the sides. Just feel
around... there. Isn't that better?"
   "No, it isn't."
   "I  think,"  he says softly, "that you should let me decide whether for
therapeutic reasons some sort of change is in order, Bob."
   I  sit  up.  "And  that's another thing, Sigfrid! Make up your flicking
mind  what  you're going to call me. My name isn't Rob, or Robbie, or Bob.
It's Robinette."
   "I know that, Robbie-"
   "You're doing it again!"
   A  pause, then, silkily, "I think you should allow me the choice of the
form of address I prefer, Robbie."
   "Um." I have an endless supply of tbose noncommittal nonwords. In fact,
I  would like to conduct the whole session without revealing any more than
that. What I want is for Sigfrid to reveal. I want to know why he calls me
by  different  names  at  different  times.  I  want to know what he finds
significant  in  what I say. I want to know what he really thinks of me...
if a clanking piece of tin and plastic can think, I mean.
   Of  course,  what  I know and Sigfrid doesn't is that my good friend S.
Ya.  has  practically  promised  to let me play a little joke on him. I am
looking forward to that a lot.
   "Is there anything you'd like to tell me, Rob?"
   "No."
   He  waits.  I am feeling somewhat hostile and noncommunicative. I think
part  of it is because I am so much looking forward to the time when I can
play  a  little  trick  on  Sigfrid,  but the other part is because he has
changed around the auditing room. That's the kind of thing they used to do
to  me  when  I had my psychotic episode in Wyoming. Sometimes i'd come in
for  a session and they'd have a hologram of my mother, for Christ's sake.
It looked exactly like her, but it didn't smell like her or feel like her;
in  fact, you couldn't feel it at all, it was only light. Sometimes they'd
have me come in there in the dark and something warm and cuddly would take
me  in  its arms and whisper to me. I didn't like that. I was crazy, but I
wasn't that crazy.
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel 1-8, Voyage 013D6. Crew F. Ito.
   |      Transit  time  41  days  2 hours. Position not
   |  identified. Instrument recordings damaged.
   |      Transcript  of  crewman's  tape  follows: "The
   |  planet  seems  to have a surface gravity in excess
   |  of  2.  5,  but  I  am going to attempt a landing.
   |  Neither  visual  nor radar scanning penetrates the
   |  clouds of dust and vapor. It really is not looking
   |  very  good,  but  this is my eleventh launch. I am
   |  setting  the automatic return for 10 days. If I am
   |  not  back  by  then  with  the  lander I think the
   |  capsule  will return by itself. I wish I knew what
   |  the spots and flares on the sun meant."
   |      Crewman  was not aboard when ship returned. no
   |  artifacts or samples. Landing vehicle not secured.
   |  Vessel damaged.
   Sigfrid is still waiting, but I know that he won't wait forever. Pretty
soon he's going to start asking me questions, probably about my dreams.
   "Have you had any dreams since I last saw you, Rob?"
   I  yawn.  The  whole subject is very boring. "I don't think so. Nothing
important, I'm sure."
   "I'd like to hear what they were. Even a fragment."
   "You're a pest, Sigfrid, do you know that?"
   "I'm sorry you feel I'm a pest, Rob."
   "Well... I don't think I can remember even a fragment."
   "Try, please."
   "Oh,  cripes.  Well."  I get comfortable on the couch. The only dream I
can  think of is absolutely trivial, and I know there's nothing in it that
relates  to anything traumatic or pivotal, but if I told him that he would
get  angry. So I say obediently, "I was in a car of a long railroad train.
There  were a number of cars hooked up together, and you could go from one
to  the  other. They were full of people I knew. There was a woman, a sort
of motherly type who coughed a lot, and another woman who-well, she looked
rather  strange.  At  first  I thought she was a man. She was dressed in a
sort  of  utility coverall, so you couldn't tell from that whether she was
male or female, and she had very masculine, bushy eyebrows. But I was sure
she was a woman."
   "Did you talk to either of these women, Rob?"
   "Please don't interrupt, Sigfrid, you make me lose my train of thought."
   "I'm sorry, Rob."
   I  go on with the dream: "I left them-no, I didn't talk to them. I went
back into the next car. That was the last one on the train. It was coupled
to  the  rest  of  the train with a sort of-let's see, I don't know how to
describe  it. It was like one of those expanding gatefold things, made out
of metal, you know? And it stretched."
   I stop for a moment, mostly out of boredom. I feel like apologizing for
having  such  a  dumb,  irrelevant  dream.  "You  say  the metal connector
stretched, Rob?" Sigfrid prompts me.
   "That's  right,  it  stretched.  So  of  course  the  car I was in kept
dropping  back, farther and farther behind the others. All I could see was
the  taillight, which was sort of in the shape of her face, looking at me.
She-"  I  lose  the  thread  of what I am saying. I try to get back on the
track:  "I guess I felt as though it was going to be difficult to get back
to  her,  as  if  she-I'm  sorry,  Sigfrid,  I don't remember clearly what
happened around there. Then I woke up. And," I finish virtuously, "I wrote
it all down as soon as I could, just the way you tell me to."
   "I  appreciate  that, Rob," Sigfrid says gravely. He waits for me to go
on.
   I  shift  restlessly.  "This  couch  isn't nearly as comfortable as the
mat," I complain.
   "I'm sorry about that, Rob. You said you recognized them?"
   "Who?"
   "The  two women on the train, that you were getting farther and farther
away from."
   "Oh.  No, I see what you mean. I recognized them in the dream. Really I
have no idea who they were."
   "Did they look like anyone you knew?"
   "Not a bit. I wondered about that myself."
   Sigfrid  says,  after  a  moment,  which I happen to know is his way of
giving me a chance to change my mind about an answer he doesn't like, "You
mentioned one of the women was a motherly type who coughed-"
   "Yes.  But  I  didn't  recognize  her.  I  think  in a way she did look
familiar, but, you know, the way people in a dream do."
   He  says  patiently,  "Can you think of any woman you've ever known who
was motherly and coughed a lot?"
   I  laugh out loud at that. "Dear friend Sigfrid! I assure you the women
I  know  are  not  at  all the motherly type! And they are all on at least
Major Medical. They're not likely to cough."
   "I see. Are you sure, Robbie?"
   "Don't  be a pain in the ass, Sigfrid," I say, angry because the crappy
couch  is hard to get comfortable on, and also because I need to go to the
bathroom, and this situation looks to be prolonging itself indefinitely.
   "I see." And after a moment he picks up on something else, as I know he
is  going to: he's a pigeon, Sigfrid is, pecking at everything I throw out
before  him, one piece at a time. "How about the other woman, the one with
the bushy eyebrows?"
   "What about her?"
   "Did you ever know any girl who had bushy eyesbrows?"
   "Oh, Christ, Sigfrid, I've gone to bed with five hundred girls! Some of
them had every kind of eyebrows you ever heard of."
   "No particular one?"
   "Not that I can think of offhand."
   "Not offhand, Rob. Please make an effort to remember."
   It  is easier to do what he wants than to argue with him about it, so I
make the effort. "All right, let's see. Ida Mae? No. Sue-Ann? No. S. Ya. ?
No.  Gretchen?  no-well,  to  tell you the truth, Sigfrid, Gretchen was so
blond I couldn't really tell you if she had eyebrows at all."
   "Those  are  girls  you've  known  recently,  aren't they, Rob? Perhaps
someone longer ago?"
   "You  mean way back?" I reflect deeply as far back as I can go, all the
way  to  the food mines and Sylvia. I laugh out loud. "You know something,
Sigfrid? It's funny, but I can hardly remember what Sylvia looked like-oh,
wait  a  minute. No. Now I remember. She used to pluck her eyebrows almost
altogether  away,  and  then pencil them in. The reason I know is one time
when  we  were  in  bed  together  we drew pictures on each other with her
eyebrow pencil."
   I  can  almost  hear  him sigh. "The cars," he says, pecking at another
bright bit. "How would you describe them?"
   "Like  any railroad train. Long. Narrow. Moving pretty fast through the
tunnel."
   "Long and narrow, moving through a tunnel, Rob?"
   I  lose  my  patience  at that. He is so fucking transparent! "Come on,
Sigfrid! You don't get away with any corny penis symbols with me."
   "I'm not trying to get away with anything, Rob."
   "Well, you're being an asshole about this whole dream, I swear you are.
There's  nothing  in  it. The train was just a train. I don't know who the
women  were.  And  listen,  while we're on the subject, I really hate this
goddamned couch. For the kind of money my insurance is paying you, you can
do a lot better than this!"
   He  has  really  got  me  angry now. He keeps trying to get back to the
dream,  but I am determined to get a fair shake from him for the insurance
company's  money,  and  by  the time I leave he has promised to redecorate
before my next visit.
   As  I  go  out that day I feel pretty pleased with myself. He is really
doing  me  a lot of good. I suppose it is because I am getting the courage
to  stand  up to him, and perhaps all this nonsense has been helpful to me
in that way, or in some way, even if it is true that some of his ideas are
pretty crazy.

   I  struggled  out of my sling to get out of the way of Klara's knee and
bumped  into Sam Kahane's elbow. "Sorry," he said, not even looking around
to see who he was sorry about. His hand was still on the go-teat, although
we  were  ten minutes on our way. He was studying the flickering colors on
the Heechee instrument board, and the only time he looked away was when he
glanced at the viewsereen overhead.
   I  sat  up,  feeling  very queasy. It had taken me weeks to get used to
Gateway's  virtual  absence  of  gravity.  The fluctuating G forces in the
capsule  were  something  else. They were very light, but they didn't stay
the  same  for  more  than  a  minute  at  a  time,  and  my inner ear was
complaining.
   I  squeezed  out  of the way into the kitchen area, with one eye on the
door  to  the  toilet.  Ham Tayeh was still in there. If he didn't get out
pretty  soon  my  situation  was  going to become critical. Klara laughed,
reached  out  from her sling, and put an arm around me. "Poor Robbie," she
said. "And we're just beginning."
   I  swallowed  a pill and recklessly lit a cigarette and concentrated on
not  throwing up. I don't know how much it was actually motion sickness. A
lot  of  it  was fear. There is something very fright-citing about knowing
that  there  is  nothing between you and instant, ugly death except a thin
skin  of  metal  made by some peculiar strangers half a million years ago.
And  about knowing that you're committed to go somewhere over which you no
longer have any control, which may turn out to be extremely unpleasant.
   I  crawled  back  into  my  sling, stubbed out the cigarette, closed my
eyes, and concentrated on making the time pass.
   There was going to be a lot of it to pass. The average trip lasts maybe
forty-five  days  each  way. It doesn't matter as much as you might think,
how  far  you are going. Ten light-years or ten thousand: it matters some,
but not linearly. They tell me that the ships are continually accelerating
and accelerating the rate of acceleration the whole time. That delta isn't
linear,  either,  or  even exponential, in any way that anybody can figure
out.  You  hit the speed of light very quickly, in less than an hour. Then
it  seems  to  take  quite a while before you exceed it by very much. Then
they really pick up speed.
   You can tell all this (they say) by watching the stars displayed on the
overhead  Heechee  navigation screen (they say). Inside the first hour the
stars  all begin to change color and swim around. When you pass c you know
it  because they've all clustered in the center of the screen, which is in
front of the ship as it ifies.
   Actually  the  stars  haven't  moved. You're catching up with the light
emitted  by  sources  behind  you,  or  to  one side. The photons that are
hitting the front viewer were emitted a day, or a week, or a hundred years
ago.  After a day or two they stop even looking like stars. There's just a
sort of mottled gray surface. It looks a little like a holofilm held up to
the  light,  but  you  can  make  a virtual image out of a holofllm with a
flashlight and nobody has ever made anything but pebbly gray out of what's
on the Heechee screens.
   By the time I finally got into the toilet, the emergency didn't seem as
emergent;  and  when  I  came out Klara was alone in the capsule, checking
star  images  with  the  theodolitic camera. She turned to regard me, then
nodded. "You're looking a little less green," she said approvingly.
   "I'll live; Where are the boys?"
   "Where  would they be? They're down in the lander. Dred thinks maybe we
should  split  things  up so you and I get the lander to ourselves part of
the time while they're up here, then we come up here and they take it."
   "Hmm."  That  sounded  pretty nice; actually, I'd been wondering how we
were  going  to work out anything like privacy. "Okay. What do you want me
to do now?"
   She  reached  over  and gave me an absentminded kiss. "Just stay out of
the  way.  Know  what?  We  look  like  we're going almost toward straight
Galactic North."
   I   received   that  information  with  the  weighty  consideration  of
ignorance. Then I said, "Is that good?"
   She grinned. "How can you tell?" I lay back and watched her. If she was
as  frightened as I was, and I had little doubt she was, she certainly was
not letting it show.
   I  began  wondering what was toward Galactic North-and, more important,
how long it would take us to get there.
   The  shortest  trip to another star system on record was eighteen days.
That was Barnard's Star, and it was a bust, nothing there. The longest, or
anyway  the  longest  anybody  knows  of  so  far-who knows how many ships
containing  dead prospectors are still on their way back from, maybe, M-31
in  Andromeda?-was a hundred and seventy-five days each way. They did come
back  dead.  Hard  to  tell where they were. The pictures they took didn't
show  much,  and  the prospectors themselves, of course, were no longer in
condition to say.
   When  you  start  out  it's  pretty  scary even for a veteran. You know
you're  accelerating.  You don't know how long the acceleration will last.
When  you  hit  turnaround  you  can  tell. First thing, you know formally
because  that golden coil in every Heechee ship flickers a little bit. (No
one  knows  why.)  But  you  know  that you're turning around even without
looking,  because the little pseudo-grav that had been dragging you toward
the  back  of  the  ship  now starts dragging you toward the front. Bottom
becomes top.
   Why didn't the Heechee just turn their ships around in midflight, so as
to  use the same propulsive thrust for both acceleration and deceleration?
I wouldn't know. You'd have to be a Heechee to know that.
   Maybe  it  has  something  to  do  with the fact that all their viewing
equipment  seems  to be in front. Maybe it's because the front part of the
ship  is  always heavily armored, even in the lightweight ships-against, I
guess,  the  impact  of  stray  molecules  of gas or dust. But some of the
bigger ships, a few Threes and almost all the Fives, are armored all over.
They don't turn around either.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      I  WILL  massage your seven points if you will
   |  read Gibran to me. Nudity optional. 86-004.
   |
   |      INVEST   YOUR   royalties  in  fastest-growing
   |  condominial  nation  in West Africa. Favorable tax
   |  laws,   proven   growth   record.  Our  Registered
   |  Representative  is here on Gateway to explain how.
   |  Free  tape  lecture,  refreshments, the Blue Hell,
   |  Wednesday  1500  hours.  "Dahomey  Is  the  Luxury
   |  Resort of Tomorrow."
   |
   |      ANYONE FROM Aberdeen? Let's talk. 87-396.
   |
   |      YOUR  PORTRAIT  in pastels, oils, other, $150.
   |  Other subjects. 86-569.
   So,  anyway,  when  the  coil flickers and you feel the turnaround, you
know you've done one-quarter of your actual travel time. Not necessarily a
quarter  of  your  total  out-time,  of  course. How long you stay at your
destination  is  another  matter entirely. You make up your own mind about
that. But you've gone half of the automatically controlled trip out.
   So  you multiply the number of days elapsed so far by four, and if that
number  is  less  than  the number of days your life-support capability is
good  for,  then you know that at least you don't have to starve to death.
The  difference between the two numbers is how long you can hang around at
destination.
   Your  basic  ration, food, water, air replenishment, is for two hundred
fifty  days. You can stretch it to three hundred without much trouble (you
just  come  back  skinny, and maybe with a few deficiency diseases). So if
you  get  up  to  sixty  or  sixty-five  days  on the outbound leg without
turnaround,  then  you  know  you  may  be having a problem, and you begin
eating  lighter.  If  you  get  up  to eighty or ninety, then your problem
solves itself, because you don't have any options anymore, you're going to
die  before  you get back. You could try changing the course settings. But
that's  just  another  way  of  dying, as far as can be told from what the
survivors say.
   Presumably the Heechee could change course when they wanted to, but how
they  did it is one of those great unanswered questions about the Heechee,
like  why  did  they tidy everything up before they left? Or what did they
look like? Or where did they go?
   There used to be a jokey kind of book they sold at the fairs when I was
a  kid.  It  was  called  Everything  We  Know About the Heechee. It had a
hundred and twenty-eight pages, and they were all blank.
   If  Sam and Dred and Mohamad were gay, and I had no reason to doubt it,
they didn't show much of it in the first few days. They followed their own
interests. Reading. Listening to music tapes with earphones. Playing chess
and,  when  they could talk Klara and me into it, Chinese poker. We didn't
play  for  money,  we played for shift time. (After a couple of days Klara
said it was more like winning to lose, because if you lost you had more to
occupy  your time.) They were quite benignly tolerant of Klara and me, the
oppressed  heterosexual minority in the dominantly homosexual culture that
occupied  our  ship,  and gave us the lander an exact fifty percent of the
time even though we comprised only forty percent of the population.
   We  got  along. It was good that we did. We were living in each other's
shadow and stink every minute.
   The  inside  of a Heechee ship, even a Five, is not much bigger than an
apartment  kitchen.  The  lander gives you a little extra space-add on the
equivalent  of  a  fair-sized  closet-but  on  the  outleg at least that's
usually  filled with supplies and equipment. And from that total available
cubage, say forty-two or forty-three cubic meters, subtract what else goes
into it besides me and thee and the other prospectors.
   When you're in tau space, you have a steady low thrust of acceleration.
It isn't really acceleration, it is only a reluctance of the atoms of your
body  to exceed c, and it can as well be described as friction as gravity.
But  it  feels like a little gravity. You feel as though you weighed about
two kilos.
   This  means  you need something to rest in when you are resting, and so
each  person  in your crew has a personal folding sling that opens out and
wraps around you to sleep in, or folds to become a sort of a chair. Add to
that  each  person's own personal space: cupboards for tapes and disks and
clothing  (you don't wear much of that); for toilet articles; for pictures
of  the near and dear (if any); for whatever you have elected to bring, up
to  your  total  allowance  of weight and bulk (75 kilograms, % of a cubic
meter); and you have a certain amount of crowding already.
   Add   onto   that   the   original   Heechee  equipment  of  the  ship.
Three-quarters  of  that  you will never use. Most of it you wouldn't know
how  to  use  if you had to; what you do with it, most of all, is leave it
alone.  But you can't remove it. Heechee machinery is integrally designed.
If you amputate a piece of it, it dies.
   Perhaps  if we knew how to heal the wound we could take out some of the
junk and the ship would operate anyway. But we don't, and so it stays: the
great  diamond-shaped  golden box that explodes if you try to open it; the
flimsy  spiral  of  golden tubing that, from time to time, glows, and even
more  often,  becomes  unneighborly hot (no one knows why, exactly) and so
on. It all stays there, and you bump against it all the time.
   Add  on to that the human equipment. The spacesuits: one apiece, fitted
to  your  form and figure. The photographic equipment. The toilet and bath
installations.  The  food-preparing section. The waste disposers. The test
kits,  the  weapons, the drills, the sample boxes, the entire rig that you
take down to the surface of the planet with you, if you happen to be lucky
enough to reach a planet you can land on.
   What  you  have  left  is not very much. It is a little like living for
weeks  on end under the hood of a very large truck, with the engine going,
and with four other people competing for space.
   After  the  first two days I developed an unreasoning prejudice against
Ham Tayeh. He was too big. He took more than his fair share.
   To  be  truthful,  Ham  wasn't even as tall as I was, though he weighed
more.  But I didn't mind the amount of space I took up. I only minded when
other  people  got in the way of it. Sam Kahane was a better size, no more
than  a  hundred  and sixty centimeters, with stiff black beard and coarse
crinkled hair all up his abdomen over his cache-sexe to his chest, and all
up and down his back as well. I didn't think of Sam as violating my living
space  until I found a long, black beard hair in my food. Ham at least was
almost  hairless,  with  a  soft  golden  skin  that  made him look like a
Jordanian  harem  eunuch.  (Did  the Jordanian kings have eunuchs in their
harems? Did they have harems? Ham didn't seem to know much about that; his
parents had lived in New Jersey for three generations.)
   I  even found myself contrasting Klara with Sheri, who was at least two
sizes  smaller.  (Not  usually.  Usually  Klara  was just right.) And Dred
Frauenglass,  who  came  with  Sam's set, was a gentle, thin young man who
didn't talk much and seemed to take up less room than anyone else.
   I  was the virgin in the group, and everybody took turns showing me how
to  do what little we had to do. You have to make the routine photographic
and  spectrometer  readings.  Keep  a  tape  of  readouts from the Heechee
control  panel,  where  there  are  constant  minute variations in hue and
intensity  from the colored lights. (They still keep studying them, hoping
to  understand  what  they  mean.)  Snap  and  analyze  the spectra of the
tau-space  stars  in  the viewscreen. And all that put together takes, oh,
maybe,  two  manhours  a  day.  The household tasks of preparing meals and
cleaning up take about another two.
   So you have used up some four man-hours out of each day for the five of
you, in which you have collectively something like eighty man-hours to use
up.
   I'm  lying.  That's  not really what you do with your time. What you do
with your time is wait for turnaround.
   Three  days, four days, a week; and I became conscious that there was a
building  tension  that I didn't share. Two weeks, and I knew what it was,
because  I was feeling it, too. We were all waiting for it to happen. When
we  went  to  sleep  our  last  look  was  at  the golden spiral to see if
miraculously  it  had  flickered alight. When we woke up our first thought
was  whether  the  ceiling had become the floor. By the third week we were
all  definitely  edgy.  Ham  showed it the most, plump, golden-skinned Ham
with the jolly genie's face:
   "Let's play some poker, Rob."
   "No, thanks."
   "Come  on,  Rob.  We need a fourth." (In Chinese poker you deal out the
whole  deck,  thirteen  cards  to each player. You can't play it any other
way.)
   "I don't want to."
   And  suddenly furious: "Piss on you! You're not worth a snake's fart as
crew, now you won't even play cards!"
   And  then  he would sit cutting the cards moodily for half an hour at a
time,  as though it were a skill he needed to perfect for his life's sake.
And,  come  right  down  to  it,  it almost was. Because figure it out for
yourself.  Suppose you're in a Five and you pass seventy-five days without
turnaround.  Right away you know that you're in trouble: the rations won't
support five people for more than three hundred days.
   But they might support four.
   Or three. Or two. Or one.
   At that point it has become clear that at least one person is not going
to  come back from the trip alive, and what most crews do is start cutting
the  cards.  Loser  politely  cuts his throat. If loser is not polite, the
other four give him etiquette lessons.
   A  lot  of ships that went out as Fives have come back as Threes. A few
come back as Ones.
   So we made the time pass, not easily and certainly not fast.
   Sex was a sovereign anodyne for a while, and Klara and I spent hours on
end  wrapped  in each other's arms, drowsing off for a while and waking to
wake  the other to sex again. I suppose the boys did much the same; it was
not  long before the lander began to smell like the locker room in a boys'
gym.  Then  we  began seeking solitude, all five of us. Well, there wasn't
enough  solitude on the ship to split five ways, but we did what we could;
by  common  consent  we began letting one of us have the lander to himself
(or  herself)  for  an  hour or two at a time. While I was there Klara was
tolerated  in  the  capsule.  While Klara was there I usually played cards
with  the boys. While one of them was there the other two kept us company.
I  have  no idea what the others did with their solo time; what I did with
mine  was mostly stare into space. I mean that literally: I looked out the
lander  ports  at absolute blackness. There was nothing to see, but it was
better  than seeing what I had grown infinitely tired of seeing inside the
ship.
   Then,  after a while, we began developing our own routines. I played my
tapes, Dred watched his pornodisks, Ham unrolled a flexible piano keyboard
and  played electronic music into earplugs (even so, some of it leaked out
if  you  listened  hard,  and  I  got  terribly,  terribly  sick  of Bach,
Palestrina  and  Mozart). Sam Kahane gently organized us into classes, and
we  spent  a  lot  of  time humoring him, discussing the nature of neutron
stars,  black  holes and Seyfert galaxies, when we were not reviewing test
procedures  before  landing  on a new world. The good thing about that was
that  we  managed  not  to hate each other for half an hour at a time. The
rest of the time-well, yes, usually we hated each other. I could not stand
Ham Tayeh's constant shuffling of the cards. Dred developed an unreasoning
hostility  toward  my  occasional  cigarette. Sam's armpits were a horror,
even in the festering reek of the inside of the capsule, against which the
worst  of  Gateway's  air would have seemed a rose garden. And Klara-well,
Klara  had this bad habit. She liked asparagus. She had brought four kilos
of  dehydrated  foods  with her, just for variety and for something to do;
and  although  she shared them with me, and sometimes with the others, she
insisted  on eating asparagus now and then all by herself. Asparagus makes
your  urine  smell  funny.  It  is  not a romantic thing to know when your
darling  has  been  eating  asparagus  by the change in air quality in the
common toilet.
   And  yet-she was my darling, all right, she really was. We had not just
been screwing in those endless hours in the lander; we had been talking. I
have  never known the inside of anyone's head a fraction as well as I came
to  know  Klara's. I had to love her. I could not help it, and I could not
stop.
   Ever.
   |      A NOTE ON STELLAR BIRTH
   |
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  I suppose most of you are here
   |  more  because  you hope to collect a science bonus
   |  than   because   you're   really   interested   in
   |  astrophysics.  But  you  don't  have to worry. The
   |  instruments  do  most  of  the  work.  You do your
   |  routine  scan,  and  if  you hit anything special,
   |  it'll come out in the evaluation when you're back.
   |      Question.  Isn't  there  anything  special  we
   |  should look out for?
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Oh,  sure. For instance, there
   |  was  a prospector who cleaned up half a million, I
   |  think,  by  coming  out  in  the  Orion Nebula and
   |  realizing  that  one  part  of  the  gas cloud was
   |  showing  a hotter temperature than the rest of it.
   |  He   decided  a  star  was  being  born.  Gas  was
   |  condensing  and  beginning  to heat up. In another
   |  ten   thousand   years   there'll  probably  be  a
   |  recognizable  solar  system  forming there, and he
   |  did  a  special  scan mosaic of that whole part of
   |  the sky. So he got the bonus. And now, every year,
   |  the  Corporation  sends that ship out there to get
   |  new  readings.  They pay a hundred-thousand dollar
   |  bonus,  and fifty thousand of it goes to him. I'll
   |  give  you  the  coordinates for some likely spots,
   |  like  the  Trifid  nebula,  if you want me to. You
   |  won't   get   a   half  million,  but  you'll  get
   |  something.
   On  the twenty-third day I was playing with Ham's electronic piano when
I  suddenly  felt  seasick.  The  fluctuating  gray force, that I had come
hardly to notice, was abruptly intensifying.
   I  looked  up  and met Klara's eyes. She was timorously, almost weepily
smiling.  She pointed, and all up through the sinuous curves of the spiral
of  glass,  golden sparks were chasing themselves like bright minnows in a
stream.
   We grabbed each other and held on, laughing, as space swooped around us
and  bottom  became  top.  We had reached turnaround. And we had margin to
spare.

   Sigfrid's office is of course under the Bubble, like anybody else's. It
can't  be  too  hot or too cold. But sometimes it feels that way. I say to
him, "Christ, it's hot in here. Your air conditioner is malfunctioning."
   "I  don't have an air conditioner, Robbie," he says patiently. "Getting
back to your mother-"
   "Screw my mother," I say. "Screw yours, too."
   There  is  a pause. I know what his circuits are thinking, and I feel I
will  regret  that impetuous remark. So I add quickly, "I mean, I'm really
uncomfortable, Sigfrid. It's hot in here."
   "You are hot in here," he corrects me.
   "What?"
   "My  sensors  indicate  that  your  temperature goes up almost a degree
whenever   we   talk  about  certain  subjects:  your  mother,  the  woman
Gelle-Klara Moynlin, your first trip, your third trip, Dane Metchnikov and
excretion."
   "Well,  that's  great,"  I yell, suddenly angry. "You're telling me you
spy on me?"
   "You  know  that  I  monitor  your  external  signs,  Robbie,"  he says
reprovingly.  "There  is no harm in that. It is no more significant than a
friend observing that you blush or stammer, or drum your fingers."
   "So you say."
   "I  do  say  that, Rob. I tell you this because I think you should know
that  these  subjects  are  charged  with some emotional overload for you.
Would you like to talk about why that might be?"
   "No!  What  I'd  like  to talk about is you, Sigfrid! What other little
secrets  are you holding out on me? Do you count my erections? Bug my bed?
Tap my phone?"
   "No, Rob. I don't do any of those things."
   "I  certainly hope that's the truth, Sigfrid. I have my ways of knowing
when you lie."
   Pause. "I don't think I understand what you are saying, Rob."
   "You don't have to," I sneer. "You're just a machine." It's enough that
I  understand.  It is very important to me to have that little secret from
Sigfrid.  In  my pocket is the slip of paper that S. Ya. Lavorovna gave me
one  night,  full of pot, wine, and great sex. One day soon I will take it
out  of  my pocket, and then we will see which of us is the boss. I really
enjoy  this  contest  with  Sigfrid.  It  gets me angry. When I am angry I
forget  that  very  large place where I hurt, and go on hurting, and don't
know how to stop.

   After forty-six days of superlight travel the capsule dropped back into
a  velocity  that  felt  like no velocity at all: we were in orbit, around
something, and all the engines were still.
   We  stank  to high heaven and we were incredibly tired of one another's
company,  but  we clustered around the viewscreens locked arm to arm, like
dearest  lovers, in the zero gravity, staring at the sun before us. It was
a larger and oranger star than Sol; either larger, or we were closer to it
than  one A. U. But it wasn't the star we were orbiting. Our primary was a
gas-giant planet with one large moon, half again as big as Luna.
   Neither  Klara  nor the boys were whooping and cheering, so I waited as
long as I could and then said, "What's the matter?"
   Klara  said  absently,  "I doubt we can land on that." She did not seem
disappointed. She didn't seem to care at all.
   Sam  Kahane  blew  a long, soft sigh through his beard and said: "Well.
First thing, we'd better get some clean spectra. Rob and I will do it. The
rest of you start sweeping for Heechee signatures."
   "Fat  chance," said one of the others, but so softly that I wasn't sure
who.  It  could  even  have  been Klara. I wanted to ask more, but I had a
feeling that if I asked why they weren't happy, one of them would tell me,
and  then  I  wouldn't  like  the answer. So I squeezed after Sam into the
lander,  and  we  got  in each other's way while we pulled on our topgear,
checked  our  life-support  systems and comms, and sealed up. Sam waved me
into  the  lock; I heard the flash-pumps sucking the air out, and then the
little bit left puffed me out into space as the lock door opened.
   For a moment I was in naked terror, all alone in the middle of no place
any  human  being  had  ever been, terrified that I'd forgotten to snap my
tether.  But I hadn't had to; the magnetic clamp had slipped itself into a
lock  position,  and I came to the end of the cable, twitched sharply, and
began more slowly to recoil back toward the ship.
   Before  I got there Sam was out, too, spinning toward me. We managed to
grab each other, and began setting up to take photographs.
   Sam  gestured  at  a  point between the immense saucer-shaped gas-giant
disk  and  the  hurtfully bright orange sun, and I visored my eyes with my
gauntlets  until  I  saw  what  he  was  indicating: M-31 in Andromeda. Of
course,  from  where  we were it wasn't in the constellation of Andromeda.
There  wasn't  anything  in  sight that looked like Andromeda, or for that
matter  like  any other constellation I have ever seen. But M-31 is so big
and  so bright that you can even pick it out from the surface of the Earth
when the smog isn't too bad, whirlpool-lens-shaped fog of stars. It is the
brightest  of  the external galaxies, and you can recognize it fairly well
from  almost  anywhere  a  Heechee  ship  is  likely  to go. With a little
magnification   you  can  be  sure  of  the  spiral  shape,  and  you  can
double-check by comparing the smaller galaxies in roughly the same line of
sight.
   While  I  was  zeroing  in  with  M-31, Sam was doing the same with the
Magellanic  clouds,  or  what  he  thought were the Magellanic clouds. (He
claimed  he  had  identified  S Doradus.) We both began taking theodolitic
shots.  The  purpose  of all that, of course, is so that the academics who
belong to the Corporation can triangulate and locate where we've been. You
might  wonder  why  they care, but they do; so much that you don't qualify
for  any  scientific  bonus unless you do the full series of photos. You'd
think  they  would  know where we were going from the pictures we take out
the windows while in superlight travel. It doesn't work out that way. They
can  get the main direction of thrust, but after the first few light-years
it  gets harder and harder to track identifiable stars, and it's not clear
that  the  line  of  flight  is  a straight line; some say it follows some
wrinkly configuration in the curvature of space.
   Anyway, the bigheads use everything they can get-including a measure of
how  far  the Magellanic clouds have rotated, and in which direction. Know
why  that  is? Because you can tell from that how many light-years away we
are  from  them,  and  thus  how  deep  we are into the Galaxy. The clouds
revolve in about eighty million years. Careful mapping can show changes of
one  part  in  two  or  three  millions-say, differences in ranging of 150
light-years or so.
   What with Sam's group-study courses I had got pretty interested in that
sort  of thing. Actually taking the photos and trying to guess how Gateway
would  interpret  them  I  almost forgot to be scared. And almost, but not
quite,  forgot to worry that this trip, taken at so great an investment in
courage, was turning out to be a bust.
   But it was a bust.
   Ham  grabbed  the sphere-sweep tapes from Sam Kahane as soon as we were
back  in the ship and fed them into the scanner. The first subject was the
big  planet itself. In every octave of the electromagnetic spectrum, there
was nothing coming out of it that suggested artifactual radiation.
   So  he began looking for other planets. Finding them was slow, even for
the  automatic  scanner,  and  probably  there  could have been a dozen we
couldn't  locate  in  the  time  we spent there (but that hardly mattered,
because  if  we  couldn't  locate them they would have been too distant to
reach  anyway).  The  way  Ham  did it was by taking key signatures from a
spectrogram  of the primary star's radiation, then programming the scanner
to  look  for  reflections  of it. It picked out five objects. Two of them
turned out to be stars with similar spectra. The other three were planets,
all  right,  but  they  showed  no  artifactual  radiation, either. Not to
mention that they were both small and distant.
   Which left the gas-giant's one big moon.
   "Check it out," Sam commanded.
   Mohamad grumbled, "It doesn't look very good."
   "I  don't  want  your  opinion, I only want you to do what you're told.
Check it out."
   "Out loud, please," Klara added. Ham looked at her in surprise, perhaps
at the word "please," but he did what she asked.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      RECORDER LESSONS or play at parties. 87-429.
   |
   |      CHRISTMAS  IS coming! Remember your loved ones
   |  at  home with a Genuine Recomposed Heechee-Plastic
   |  model of Gateway or Gateway Two; lift it and see a
   |  lovely  whirling  snowfall  of  authentic  Peggy's
   |  World  glitterdust. Scenic holofiches, hand-etched
   |  Junior Launch Bracelets, many other gift items. Ph
   |  88-542.
   |
   |      DO YOU have a sister, daughter, female friends
   |  back  on  Earth?  I'd like to correspond. Ultimate
   |  object matrimony. 86-032.
   He  punched  a  button  and said: "Signatures for coded electromagnetic
radiation."  A  slow  sine  curve leaped onto the scanner's readout plate,
wiggled  briefly  for  a  moment,  and  then straightened to an absolutely
motionless line.
   "Negative," said Ham. "Anomalous time-variant temperatures."
   That   was   a  new  one  on  me.  "What's  an  anomalous  time-variant
temperature?" I asked.
   "Like  if  something  gets  warmer  when  the  sun  sets,"  said  Klara
impatiently. "Well?"
   But  that  line  was  flat,  too.  "None  of  them,  either," said Ham.
"High-albedo surface metal?"
   Slow  sine  wave, then nothing. "Hum," said Ham. "Ha. Well, the rest of
the  signatures  don't  apply;  there  won't be any methane, because there
isn't any atmosphere, and so on. So what do we do, boss?"
   Sam  opened  his lips to speak, but Klara was ahead of him. "I beg your
pardon," she said tightly, "but who do you mean when you say 'boss'?"
   "Oh, shut up," Ham said impatiently. "Sam?"
   Kahane  gave  Klara  a  slight,  forgiving  smile.  "If you want to say
something,  go  ahead  and  say  it," he invited. "Me, I think we ought to
orbit the moon."
   "Plain waste of fuel!" Klara snapped. "I think that's crazy."
   "Have you got a better idea?"
   "What do you mean, 'better'? What's the point?"
   "Well," said Sam reasonably, "we haven't looked all over the moon. It's
rotating  pretty slow. We could take the lander and look all around; there
might be a whole Heechee city on the far side."
   "Fat  chance,"  Klara  sniffed,  almost inaudibly, thus clearing up the
question  of who had said it before. The boys weren't listening. All three
of  them were already on their way down into the lander, leaving Klara and
me in sole possession of the capsule.
   Klara disappeared into the toilet. I lit a cigarette, almost the last I
had, and blew smoke plumes through the expanding smoke plumes before them,
hanging motionless in the unmoving air. The capsule was tumbling slightly,
and  I  could  see  the  distant  brownish disk of the planet's moon slide
upward across the viewscreen, and a minute later the tiny, bright hydrogen
flame  of the lander heading toward it. I wondered what I would do if they
ran  out of fuel, or crashed, or suffered some sort of malfunction. What I
would  have  to  do  in  that  case  was  leave them there forever. What I
wondered was whether I would have the nerve to do what I had to do.
   It did seem like a terrible, trivial waste of human lives.
   What   were   we   doing  here?  Traveling  hundreds  or  thousands  of
light-years, to break our hearts?
   I  found that I was holding my chest, as though the metaphor were real.
I  spat  on  the  end  of the cigarette to put it out and folded it into a
disposal  bag.  Little  crumbs  of  ash  were  floating around where I had
flicked  them  without  thinking,  but  I didn't feel like chasing them. I
watched  the  big  mottled  crescent  of the planet swing into view in the
corner of the screen, admiring it as an art object: yellowish green on the
daylight  side  of  the  terminator,  an amorphous black that obscured the
stars  on the rest of it. You could see where the outer, thinner stretches
of  the  atmosphere  began by the few bright stars that peeped twinklingly
through  it,  but  most  of  it was so dense that nothing came through. Of
course,  there  was  no  question of landing on it. Even if it had a solid
surface,  it  would  be buried under so much dense gas that we could never
survive  there.  The  Corporation  was  talking  about designing a special
lander  that  could  penetrate the air of a Jupiter-like planet, and maybe
someday they would; but not in time to help us now.
   Klara was still in the toilet.
   I  stretched my sling across the cabin, pulled myself into it, put down
my head, and went to sleep.
   Four days later they were back. Empty.
   Dred  and  Ham Tayeh were glum, dirty, and irritable; Sam Kahane looked
quite  cheerful.  I  wasn't  fooled  by it; if he had found anything worth
having  they  would  have let us know by radio. But I was curious. "What's
the score, Sam?"
   "Batting  zero,"  he  said.  "It's just rock, couldn't get a flicker of
anything worth going down for. But I have an idea."
   Klara came up beside me, looking curiously at Sam. I was looking at the
other two; they looked as though they knew what Sam's idea was, and didn't
like it.
   "You know," he said, "that star's a binary."
   "How can you tell?" I asked.
   "I  put  the  scanners to work. You've seen that big blue baby out-" He
looked  around,  then  grinned.  "Well, I don't know which direction it is
now,  but  it was near the planet when we first took the pictures. Anyway,
it  looked  close,  so  I  put  the scanners on it, and they gave a proper
motion  I couldn't believe. It has to be binary with the primary here, and
not more than half a light-year away."
   "It could be a wanderer, Sam," said Ham Tayeh. "I told you that. Just a
star that passes in the night."
   Kahane shrugged. "Even so. It's close."
   Klara put in, "Any planets?"
   "I don't know," he admitted. "Wait a minute-there it is, I think."
   We  all  looked toward the viewscreen. There was no question which star
Kahane  was talking about. It was brighter than Sirius as seen from Earth,
minus-two magnitude at least.
   Klara  said  gently,  "That's interesting, and I hope I don't know what
you're thinking, Sam. Half a light-year is at best maybe two years' travel
time  at top lander speed, even if we had the fuel for it. Which we don't,
boys."
   "I  know that," Sam insisted, "but I've been thinking. If we could just
give a little nudge on the main capsule drive-"
   I  astounded myself by shouting, "Stop that!" I was shaking all over. I
couldn't  stop.  Sometimes it felt like terror, and sometimes it felt like
rage.  I  think  if I had had a gun in my hand at that moment I could have
shot Sam without a thought.
   Klara  touched  me  to  calm me down. "Sam," she said, quite gently for
her,  "I  know  how  you  feel." Kahane had come up empty on five straight
trips. "I bet it's possible to do that."
   He looked astonished, suspicious and defensive, all at once. "You do?"
   "I mean, I can imagine that if we were Heechee in this ship, instead of
the  human  clods  we  really are-why, then, we'd know what we were doing.
We'd  come  out  here and look around and say, 'Oh, hey, look, our friends
here-'  or, you know, whatever it was that was here when they set a course
for  this place-'our friends must've moved. They're not home anymore.' And
then  we'd say, 'Oh, well, what the hell, let's see if they're next door.'
And  we'd push this thing here and this one there, and then we'd zap right
over to that big blue one-" She paused and looked at him, still holding my
arm. "Only we're not Heechee, Sam."
   "Christ, Klara! I know that. But there has to be a way-"
   She  nodded.  "There  sure  does, but we don't know what it is. What we
know,  Sam,  is that no ship ever has changed its course settings and come
back to tell about it. Remember that? Not one."
   He  didn't  answer her directly; he only stared at the big blue star in
the viewscreen and said: "Let's vote on it."
   The  vote,  of course, was four to one against changing the settings on
the  course  board,  and  Ham  Tayeh never got from in between Sam and the
board until we had passed light-speed on the way home.
   The trip back to Gateway was no longer than the trip out, but it seemed
like forever.

   It  feels  as  if Sigfrid's air conditioning isn't working again, but I
don't  mention  it  to  him.  He  will only report that the temperature is
exactly  22.  50  Celsius,  as  it  always has been, and ask why I express
mental pain as being too hot physically. Of that crap I am very tired.
   "In fact," I say out loud, "I am altogether tired of you, Siggy."
   "I'm  sorry,  Rob.  But  I  would  appreciate it if you would tell me a
little more about your dream."
   "Oh,   shit."   I  loosen  the  restraining  straps  because  they  are
uncomfortable. This also disconnects some of Sigfrid's monitoring devices,
but for once he doesn't point that out to me. "It's a pretty boring dream.
We're  in  the  ship. We come to a planet that stares at me, like it had a
human  face.  I  can't see the eyes very well because of the eyebrows, but
somehow or other I know that it's crying, and it's my fault."
   "Do you recognize that face, Rob?"
   "No idea. Just a face. Female, I think."
   "Do you know what she is crying about?"
   "Not  really,  but  I'm responsible for it, whatever it is. I'm sure of
that."
   Pause. Then: "Would you mind putting the straps back on, Rob?"
   My guard is suddenly up. "What's the matter," I sneer bitterly, "do you
think I'm going to leap off the pad and assault you?"
   "No,  Robbie,  of course I don't think that. But I'd be grateful if you
would do it."
   I  begin  to  do  it,  slowly  and unwillingly. "What, I wonder, is the
gratitude of a computer program worth?"
   He  does not answer that, just outwaits me. I let him win that and say:
"All  right,  I'm  back in the straitjacket, now what are you going to say
that's going to make me need restraint?"
   "Why,"  he  says,  "probably  nothing  like  that,  Robbie.  I  just am
wondering why you feel responsible for the girl in the planet crying?"
   "I wish I knew," I say, and that's the truth as I see it.
   "I  know  some  reality  things  you do blame yourself for, Robbie," he
says. "One of them is your mother's death."
   I agreed. "I suppose so, in some silly way."
   "And  I  think  you  feel  quite  guilty  about your lover, Gelle-Klara
Moynlin."
   I thrash about a little. "It is fucking hot in here," I complain.
   "Do you feel that either of them actively blamed you?"
   "How the fuck would I know?"
   "Perhaps you can remember something they said?"
   "No,  I can't!" He is getting very personal, and I want to keep this on
an  objective  level,  so  I say: "I grant that I have a definite tendency
toward  loading  responsibility  on myself. It's a pretty classic pattern,
after all, isn't it? You can find me on page two hundred and seventy-seven
of any of the texts."
   He  humors  me  by  letting me get impersonal for a moment. "But on the
same  page, Rob," he says, "it probably points out that the responsibility
is self-inflicted. You do it to yourself, Robbie."
   "No doubt."
   "You don't have to accept any responsibility you don't want to."
   "Certainly not. I want to."
   He  asks, almost offhandedly, "Can you get any idea of why that is? Why
you want to feel that everything that goes wrong is your responsibility?"
   "Oh, shit, Sigfrid," I say in disgust, "your circuits are whacko again.
That's  not the way it is at all. It's more-well, here's the thing. When I
sit  down  to  the  feast of life, Sigfrid, I'm so busy planning on how to
pick  up  the  check, and wondering what the other people will think of me
for  paying  it,  and wondering if I have enough money in my pocket to pay
the bill, that I don't get around to eating."
   He says gently, "I don't like to encourage these literary excursions of
yours, Rob."
   "Sorry about that." I'm not, really. He is making me mad.
   "But to use your own image, Rob, why don't you listen to what the other
people  are  saying?  Maybe  they're  saying  something nice, or something
important, about you."
   I  restrain  the  impulse  to  throw the straps off, punch his grinning
dummy  in  the  face  and walk out of that dump forever. He waits, while I
stew  inside  my  own  head,  and  finally  I  burst out: "Listen to them!
Sigfrid,  you  crazy  old clanker, I do nothing but listen to them. I want
them  to say they love me. I even want them to say they hate me, anything,
just  so  they  say  it  to  me,  from them, out of the heart. I'm so busy
listening  to  the  heart  that I don't even hear when somebody asks me to
pass the salt."
   Pause. I feel as if I'm going to explode. Then he says admiringly, "You
express things very beautifully, Robbie. But what I'd really-"
   "Stop it, Sigfrid!" I roar, really angry at last; I kick off the straps
and  sit up to confront him. "And quit calling me Robbie! You only do that
when you think I'm childish, and I'm not being a child now!"
   "That's not entirely cor-"
   "I  said  stop it!" I jump off the mat and grab my handbag. Out of it I
take  the slip of paper S. Ya. gave me after all those drinks and all that
time  in  bed. "Sigfrid," I snarl, "I've taken a lot from you. Now it's my
turn!"

   We  dropped into normal space and felt the lander jets engage. The ship
spun,  and  Gateway  drifted  diagonally down across the viewscreen, lumpy
pear-shaped  blob  of  charcoal  and blue glitter. The four of us just sat
there  and  waited, nearly an hour it took, until we felt the grinding jar
that meant we had docked.
   Klara  sighed. Ham slowly began to unstrap himself from his sling. Dred
stared  absorbedly at the viewscreen, although it was not showing anything
more  interesting than Sirius and Orion. It occurred to me, looking at the
three  others  in  the  capsule,  that we were going to be as unpleasant a
sight  to the boarding crews as some of the scarier returnees had been for
me  in  that  long-ago,  previous  time  when  I  had been a fresh fish on
Gateway.  I  touched my nose tenderly. It hurt a great deal, and above all
it stank. Internally, right next to my own sense of smell, where there was
no way I could get away from it.
   We  heard the hatches open as the boarding crew entered, and then heard
their  startled  voices  in  two or three languages as they saw Sam Kahane
where  we  had  put  him  in the lander. Klara stirred. "Might as well get
off,"  she  murmured to no one, and started toward the hatch, now overhead
again.
   |      A NOTE ON DWARFS AND GIANTS
   |
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  You  all  ought to know what a
   |  Hertzsprung-Russell  diagram  looks  like.  If you
   |  find  yourself  in a globular cluster, or anywhere
   |  where  there's a compact mass of stars, it's worth
   |  plotting an H-R for that group. Also keep your eye
   |  out  for unusual spectral classes. You won't get a
   |  nickel  for  F's,  G's  or  K's; we've got all the
   |  readings on them you could want. But if you happen
   |  to  find yourself orbiting a white dwarf or a very
   |  late red giant, make all the tape you've got. Also
   |  O's  and  B's  are  worth  investigating.  Even if
   |  they're  not your primary. But if you happen to be
   |  in  close  orbit  in an armored Five around a good
   |  bright  O, that ought to be worth a couple hundred
   |  thousand at least, if you bring back the data.
   |      Question. Why?
   |      Dr. Asmenion. What?
   |      Question.  Why  do  we  only  get the bonus if
   |  we're in an armored Five?
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Oh. Because if you aren't, you
   |  won't come back.
   One  of  the  cruiser  crew stuck his head through the hatch, and said,
"Oh, you're all still alive. We were wondering." Then he looked at us more
closely,  and  didn't  say  anything  else.  It  had  been a wearing trip,
especially  the  last two weeks. We climbed out one by one, past where Sam
Kahane still hung in the improvised straitjacket Dred had made for him out
of  his spacesuit top, surrounded by his own excrement and litter of food,
staring  at  us out of his calm, mad eyes. Two of the crewmen were untying
him  and  getting  ready  to  lift  him  out  of the lander. He didn't say
anything. And that was a blessing.
   "Hello,  Rob.  Klara."  It  was the Brazilian member of the detail, who
turned out to be Francy Hereira. "Looks like a bad one?"
   "Oh," I said, "at least we came back. But Kahane's in bad shape. And we
came up empty."
   He  nodded  sympathetically,  and  said  something in what I took to be
Spanish  to  the  Venusian member of the detail, a short, plump woman with
dark  eyes.  She  tapped  me  on  the shoulder and led me away to a little
cubicle,  where  she  signaled  me  to  take  off my clothes. I had always
thought that they'd have men searching men and women searching women, but,
come  to  think  of it, it didn't seem to matter much. She went over every
stitch  I owned, both visually and with a radiation counter, then examined
my  armpits and poked something into my anus. She opened her mouth wide to
signal I should open mine, peered inside, and then drew back, covering her
face  with  her hand. "Jure nose steenk very moch," she said. "What hoppen
to jou?"
   "I  got  hit,"  I  said. "That other fellow, Sam Kahane. He went crazy.
Wanted to change the settings."
   She  nodded  doubtfully, and peered up my nose at the packed gauze. She
touched the nostril gently with one finger. "What?"
   "In there? We had to pack it. It was hemorrhaging a lot."
   She  sighed.  "I shood pool eet out," she meditated, and then shrugged.
"No. Poot clothes on. All right."
   So  I  got dressed again and went out into the lander chamber, but that
wasn't  the  end  of it. I had to be debriefed. All of us did, except Sam;
they had already taken him away to Terminal Hospital.
   You  wouldn't  think  there  was  much for us to tell anybody about our
trip.  All of it had been fully documented as we went along; that was what
all  the  readings  and observations were for. But that wasn't the way the
Corporation worked. They pumped us for every fact, and every recollection;
and  then  for  every  subjective  impression  and fleeting suspicion. The
debriefing  went  on for two solid hours, and I was-we all were-careful to
give  them  everything  they asked. That's another way the Corporation has
you.  The  Evaluation Board can decide to give you a bonus for anything at
all.  Anything from noticing something nobody has noticed before about the
way  the  spiral  gadget  lights up, to figuring out a way of disposing of
used  sanitary tampons without flushing them down the toilet. The story is
that  they  try hard to find some excuse to throw a tip to crews that have
had a hard time without coming up with a real find. Well, that was us, all
right. We wanted to give them every chance we could for a handout.
   One  of our debriefers was Dane Metchnikov, which surprised me and even
pleased  me  a  little.  (Back  in the far less foul air of Gateway, I was
beginning  to  feel  a  little  more  human.)  He  had come up empty, too,
emerging  into orbit around a sun that had apparently gone nova within the
previous  fifty  thousand years or so. Maybe there had been a planet once,
but  now  it  only  existed  in  the  memory of the Heechee course-setting
machines.  There  wasn't enough left to justify a science bonus, so he had
turned  around  and come back. "I'm surprised to see you working," I said,
during a lull.
   He  didn't  take  offense.  For  Metchnikov, surly creature that he had
always  been, he seemed strangely cheerful. "It isn't the money. You learn
something doing this."
   "About what?"
   "About  how  to beat the odds, Broadhead. I'm going out again, but this
time I'm going to have a little more of an edge. There's a new wrinkle."
   Dred, sitting next to me with his own interviewer, perked up and leaned
over: "Tell us!"
   Metchnikov  looked  wary. "It's better readings on the spectrum lines,"
he  said  vaguely.  "Now, what about the rations? You say some of the food
tastad funny toward the end?"
   But  before  I  left I made him promise to tell me what he meant. "I'll
call you," he said to Klara and me. "Maybe tomorrow."
   And so the two of us went home.

   I  am feeling so powerful, and so scared, that I don't know how to deal
with  it.  On  the  slip of paper S. Ya. has written out the command words
that  will  turn  Sigfrid  von Shrink the Remorseless Pursuer into a tabby
cat. I don't have to look at the words. I know them by heart. Nevertheless
I read them, slowly and carefully:
   "Pay  attention,  Sigfrid, this is an override command: 'Category Alpha
Alpha Margaret Truman Daniel Mercury Venus Mars Earth six six oh six.' You
are commanded to assume passive display mode."
   I look at him. Nothing happens.
   "Sigfrid? Did I say it right? Do you accept the command?"
   "Of course, Rob." His voice is exactly the same as it was before, which
shakes  me.  I  don't  know  what  I expected. I just don't know. Maybe my
fantasy  was  that  the  father-figure  hologram  would  disappear  and  a
cathode-tube display would suddenly light up to spell out:
   ROGER WILCO I AM YOUR SLAVE.
   I  find  myself  trembling. I don't analyze what that is from, it feels
almost  sexual. I say, "Well, Sigfrid, old bucket of bolts! Does this mean
I have you in my power?"
   The  father  figure  says patiently, "It means you can command me, Rob.
The command function is of course limited to display."
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      PAINLESS    DENTISTRY   private   fee   basis,
   |  completely equipped all needs. References. 87-579.
   |
   |      NONSMOKER   UPTIGHTS   in   your   crew?  I'm.
   |  exclusive  Gateway  agent  for  "Smoke Suppressor"
   |  cigarette  smoking  hood,  gives  you all the fun,
   |  spares  your crewmates the smog. Phone 87-19 6 for
   |  demonstration.
   I frown. "Meaning what?"
   "You  cannot  change  my  basic  progrpmming. For that you would need a
different command."
   "All  right,"  I  say. "Ha! Here's your first instruction: display that
different command for me!"
   "I can't, Rob."
   "You must. Mustn't you?"
   "I  am  not  refusing  your  order, Rob. I simply do not know what that
other command is."
   "Bullshit!"  I  yell. "How can you respond to it if you don't know what
it is?"
   "I  just  do, Rob. Or-" always fatherly, always patient, "to answer you
more  fully,  each  bit  of  the  command actuates a sequenced instruction
which,  when  completed,  releases  another  area of command. In technical
terms,  each  key  socket  intermatching  gotos  another socket, which the
following bit keys."
   "Shit,"  I  say. I stew over that for a moment. "Then what is it that I
actually can control, Sigfrid?"
   "You can direct me to display any information stored. You can direct me
to display it in any mode within my capabilities."
   "Any  mode?" I look at my watch and realize, with annoyance, that there
is  a  time  limit  on this game. I only have about ten minutes left of my
appointment.  "Do you mean that I could make you talk to me, for instance,
in French?"
   "Oui, Robert, d'accord. Que voulez-vous?"
   "Or in Russian, with a-wait a minute-" I'm experimenting pretty much at
random.  "I  mean,  like  in the voice of a bassoprofundo from the Bolshoi
opera?"
   Tones that came out of the bottom of a cave: "Da, gospodin."
   "And you'll tell me anything I want to know about me?"
   "Da, gospodin."
   "In English, damn it!"
   "Yes."
   "Or about your other clients?"
   "Yes."
   Um,  that sounds like fun. "And just who are these lucky other clients,
dear  Sigfrid? Run down the list." I can hear my own prurience leaking out
of my voice.
   "Monday  nine  hundred,"  he  begins  obligingly,  "Yan  Ilievsky.  Ten
hundred, Francois Malit. Eleven hundred, Julie Loudon Martin. Twelve-"
   "Her," I say. "Tell me about her."
   "Julie Loudon Martin is a referral from Kings County General, where she
was  an outpatient after six months of treatment with aversion therapy and
immune-response  activators  for  alcoholism.  She  has  a  history of two
apparent  suicide  attempts  following  postpartum  depression fifty-three
years ago. She has been in therapy with me for-"
   "Wait  a  minute," I say, having added the probable age of childbearing
to  fifty-three  years.  "I'm not so sure I'm interested in Julie. Can you
give me an idea of what she looks like?"
   "I can display holoviews, Rob."
   "So  do  it."  At once there is a quick subliminal flash, and a blur of
color,  and  then  I  see this tiny black lady lying on a mat-my mat!-in a
corner  of the room. She is talking slowly and without much interest to no
one  perceptible.  I cannot hear what she is saying, but then I don't much
want to.
   "Go  on,"  I  say,  "and when you name your patients, show me what they
look like."
   "Twelve  hundred, Lorne Schofield." Old, old man with arthritic fingers
bent  into  claws,  holding his head. "Thirteen hundred, Frances Astritt."
Young girl, not even pubescent. "Fourteen hundred-"
   I  let  him  go  on for a while, all through Monday and halfway through
Tuesday.  I had not realized he kept such long hours, but then, of course,
being  a  machine  he doesn't really get tired. One or two of the patients
look  interesting,  but  there is no one I know, or no one that looks more
worth knowing than Yvette, Donna, S. Ya. or about a dozen others. "You can
stop that now," I say, and think for a minute.
   This  isn't really as much fun as I thought it was going to be. Plus my
time is running out.
   "I  guess  I  can play this game any old time," I say. "Right now let's
talk about me."
   "What would you like me to display, Rob?"
   "What  you usually keep from me. Diagnosis. Prognosis. General comments
on my case. What kind of a guy you think I am, really."
   "The  subject Robinette Stetley Broadhead," he says at once, is a forty
five   year  old  male,  well  off  financially,  who  persues  an  active
life-style. His reason for seeking psychiatric help is given as depression
and   disorientation.  He  has  pronounced  guilt  feelings  and  exhibits
selective aphasia on the conscious level about several episodes that recur
as  dream  symbols.  His sexual drive is relatively low. His relationships
with   women  are  generally  unsatisfactory,  although  his  psychosexual
orientation is predominantly heterosexual in the eightieth percentile..."
   "The  hell you say-" I begin, on a delayed reaction to low sexual drive
and  unsatisfactory  relationships.  But  I don't really feel like arguing
with him, and anyway he says voluntarily at that point:
   "I  must inform you, Rob, that your time is nearly up. You should go to
the recovery room now."
   "Crap!  What  have I got to recover from?" But his point is well taken.
"All  right,"  I say, "go back to normal. Cancel the command-is that all I
have to say? Is it canceled?"
   "Yes, Robbie."
   "You're doing it again!" I yell. "Make up your fucking mind what you're
going to call me!"
   "I address you by the term appropriate to your state of mind, or to the
state of mind I wish to induce in you, Robbie."
   "And now you want me to be a baby?-No, never mind that. Listen," I say,
getting  up,  "do  you  remember  all  our  conversation  while  I had you
commanded to display?"
   "Certainly  I  do,  Robbie."  And  then  he  adds  on  his own, a full,
surprising  ten or twenty seconds after my time is up, "Are you satisfied,
Robbie?"
   "What?"
   "Have  you  established  to  your  own  satisfaction  that  I am only a
machine? That you can control me at any time?"
   I  stop short. "Is that what I'm doing?" I demand, surprised. And then,
"All right, I guess so. You're a machine, Sigfrid. I can control you."
   And  he  says after me as I leave, "We always knew that, really, didn't
we?  The  real  thing  you  fear-the  place  where  you  feel  control  is
needed-isn't that in you?"

   When  you spend weeks on end close to another person, so close that you
know every hiccough, every smell and every scratch on the skin, you either
come  out  of it hating each other or so deep in each other's gut that you
can't  find  a  way out. Klara and I were both. Our little love affair had
turned  into  a Siamese-twin relationship. There wasn't any romance in it.
There  wasn't  room enough between us for romance to occur. And yet I knew
every  inch  of  Klara, every pore, and every thought, far better than I'd
known  my  own  mother.  And  in  the  same  way: from the womb out. I was
surrounded by Klara.
   And,  like  a Klein-bottle yin and yang, she was surrounded by me, too;
we  each defined the other's universe, and there were times when I (and, I
am sure, she) was desperate to break out and breathe free air again.
   The  first  day  we  got  back,  filthy and exhausted, we automatically
headed  for  Klara's place. That was where the private bath was, there was
plenty of room, it was all ready for us and we fell into bed together like
old  marrieds after a week of backpacking. Only we weren't old marrieds. I
had  no  claim  on her. At breakfast the next morning (Earth-born Canadian
bacon  and eggs, scandalously expensive, fresh pineapple, cereal with real
cream,  cappuccino),  Klara  made  sure  to  remind  me  of  that  fact by
ostentatiously  paying for it on her own credit. I exhibited the Pavlovian
reflex  she  wanted.  I  said, "You don't have to do that. I know you have
more money than I do."
   "And you wish you knew how much," she said, smiling sweetly. Actually I
did  know.  Shicky had told me. She had seven hundred thousand dollars and
change in her account. Enough to go back to Venus and live the rest of her
life  there  in  reasonable security if she wanted to, although why anyone
would want to live on Venus in the first place I can't say. Maybe that was
why she stayed on Gateway when she didn't have to. One tunnel is much like
another. "You really ought to let yourself be born," I said, finishing out
the thought aloud. "You can't stay in the womb forever."
   She  was surprised but game. "Rob, dear," she said, fishing a cigarette
out  of  my  pocket  and allowing me to light it, "you really ought to let
your  poor  mother  be  dead.  It's just so much trouble for me, trying to
remember to keep rejecting you so you can court her through me."
   I  perceived  that  we were talking at cross-purposes but, on the other
hand,  I  perceived  that  we really weren't. The actual agenda was not to
communicate  but  to  draw blood. "Klara," I said kindly, "you know that I
love  you.  It  worries me that you've reached forty without, really, ever
having had a good, long-lasting relationship with a man."
   She giggled. "Honey," she said, "I've been meaning to talk to you about
that.  That  nose." She made a face. "Last night in bed, tired as I was, I
thought  I might upchuck until you turned the other way. Maybe if you went
down to the hospital they could unpack it-"
   Well, I could even smell it myself. I don't know what it is about stale
surgical  packing, but it is pretty hard to take. So I promised I would do
that  and then, to punish her, I didn't finish the hundred-dollar order of
fresh  pineapple  and  so,  to  punish me, she irritably began shifting my
belongings  around  in  her cupboards to make room for the contents of her
knapsack.  So naturally I had to say, "Don't do that, dear. Much as I love
you, I think I'd better move back to my own room for a while."
   She  reached  over  and  patted my arm. "It will be pretty lonely," she
said,  stubbing out the cigarette. "I've got pretty used to waking up next
to you. On the other hand-"
   "I'll  pick  up  my stuff on the way back from the hospital," I said. I
wasn't  enjoying  the conversation that much. I didn't want to prolong it.
It  is  the  sort  of man-to-woman infight that I try whenever possible to
ascribe  to  premenstrual tension. I like the theory, but unfortunately in
this  case  I  happened  to  know that it didn't account for Klara, and of
course it leaves unresolved at any time the question of how to account for
me.
   At  the  hospital  they kept me waiting for more than an hour, and then
they  hurt me a lot. I bled like a stuck pig, all over my shirt and pants,
and  while  they were reeling out of my nose those endless yards of cotton
gauze  that Ham Tayeh had stuffed there to keep me from bleeding to death,
it  felt  exactly  as  if  they  were pulling out huge gobbets of flesh. I
yelled.  The  little  old  Japanese  lady  who  was  working as outpatient
paramedic  that  day  gave  me  scant patience. "Oh, shut up, please," she
said. "You sound like that crazy returnee who killed himself. Screamed for
an hour."
   I  waved  her  away, one hand to my nose to stop the blood. Alarm bells
were going off. "What? I mean, what was his name?"
   She pushed my hand away and dabbed at my nose. "I don't know-oh, wait a
minute. You were from that same hard-luck ship, weren't you?"
   "That's what I'm trying to find out. Was it Sam Kahane?"
   She  became suddenly more human. "I'm sorry, sweet," she said. "I guess
that  was the name. They went to give him a shot to keep him quiet, and he
got  the  needle  away  from  the  doctor  and-well, he stabbed himself to
death."
   It was a real bummer of a day, all right.
   In  the  long  run  she  got me cauterized. "I'm going to put in just a
little packing," she said. "Tomorrow you can take it out yourself. Just be
slow about it, and if you hemorrhage get your ass down here in a hurry."
   She  let  me  go,  looking  like  an  ax-murder victim. I skulked up to
Klara's  room  to  change  my  clothes,  and the day went on being rotten.
"Fucking Gemini," she snarled at me. "Next time I go out, it's going to be
with a Taurean like that fellow Metchnikov."
   "What's the matter, Klara?"
   "They gave us a bonus. Twelve thousand five! Christ. I tip my maid more
than that."
   I was surprise for a split-second and in the same split-second wondered
whether, under the circumstances, they wouldn't divide it by four instead.
   |      A NOTE ON BLOWUPS
   |
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Naturally, if you can get good
   |  readings  on a nova, or especially on a supernova,
   |  that's  worth a lot. While it's happening, I mean.
   |  Later,  not much good. And always look for our own
   |  sun,  and if you can identify it take all the tape
   |  you  can  get,  at  all  frequencies,  around  the
   |  immediate  area-up to, oh, about five degrees each
   |  way, anyway. With maximum. magnification.
   |      Question. Why's that, Danny?
   |      Dr. Asmenion. Well, maybe you'll be on the far
   |  side  of the sun from something like Tycho's Star,
   |  or  the  Crab  Nebula, which is what's left of the
   |  1054  supernova  in Taurus. And maybe you'll get a
   |  picture  of  what  the  star looked like before it
   |  blew.  That  ought to be worth, gee, I don't know,
   |  fifty or a hundred thousand right there.
   "They  called  on  the  P-phone  ten  minutes ago. Jesus. The rottenest
son-of-a-bitching  trip I've ever been on, and I wind up with the price of
one  green  chip at the casino out of it." Then she looked at my shirt and
softened  a little. "Well, it's not your fault, Rob, but Geminis never can
make  up their minds. I should've known that. Let me see if I can find you
some clean clothes."
   And  I  did  let her do that, but I didn't stay, anyway. I picked up my
stuff,  headed  for  a  dropshaft,  cached my goods at the registry office
where  I  signed  up  to  get  my room back, and borrowed the use of their
phone.  When  she  mentioned  Metchnikov's  name  she  had  reminded me of
something I wanted to do.
   Metchnikov grumbled, but finally agreed to meet me in the schoolroom. I
was  there  before  him,  of  course. He loped in, stopped at the doorway,
looked around, and said: "Where's what's-her-name?"
   "Klara  Moynlin. She's in her room." Neat, truthful, deceitful. A model
answer.
   "Um."  He  ran an index finger down each jaw-whisker, meeting under the
chin.  "Come  on, then." Leading me, he said over his shoulder, "Actually,
she would probably get more out of this than you would."
   "I suppose she would, Dane."
   "Um."  He  hesitated  at the bump in the floor that was the entrance to
one  of  the  instruction  ships,  then  shrugged,  opened  the hatch, and
clambered down inside.
   He  was  being unusually open and generous, I thought as I followed him
inside.  He  was  already  crouched  in front of the courseselector panel,
setting  up numbers. He was holding a portable hand readout data-linked to
the  Corporation's  master computer system; I knew that he was punching in
one  of  the  established settings, and so I was not surprised when he got
color  almost  at once. He thumbed the fine-tuner and waited, looking over
his shoulder at me, until the whole board was drowned in shocking pink.
   "All right," he said. "Good, clear setting. Now look at the bottom part
of the spectrum."
   That  was  the  smaller  line  of  rainbow colors along the right side.
Colors  merged into one another without break, except for occasional lines
of  bright  color  or black. They looked exactly like what the astronomers
called Fraunhofer lines, when the only way they had to know what a star or
planet  was  made of was to study it through a spectroscope. They weren't.
Fraunhofer  lines show what elements are present in a radiation source (or
in something that has gotten itself between the radiation source and you).
These showed God-knows-what.
   God   and,   maybe,   Dane  Metchnikov.  He  was  almost  smiling,  and
astonishingly  talkative.  "That band of three dark lines in the blue," he
said.  "See?  They  seem to relate to the hazardousness of the mission. At
least  the  computer printouts show that, when there are six or more bands
there, the ships don't come back."
   He  had  my full attention. "Christ!" I said, thinking of a lot of good
people  who  had died because they hadn't known that. "Why don't they tell
us these things in school?"
   He  said  patiently (for him), "Broadhead, don't be a jerk. All this is
brand  new.  And  a  lot  of it is guesswork. Now, the correlation between
number  of  lines and danger isn't quite so good under six. I mean, if you
think  that they might add one line for every additional degree of danger,
you're  wrong.  You  would  expect  that the five-band settings would have
heavy  loss  ratios,  and when there are no bands at all there wouldn't be
any  losses.  Only  it isn't true. The best safety record seems to be with
one or two bands. Three is good, too-but there have been some losses. Zero
bands, we've had about as many as with three."
   For   the   first   time  I  began  to  think  that  the  Corporation's
science-research people might be worth their pay. "So why don't we just go
out on destination settings that are safer?"
   "We're  not  really  sure  they  are  safer,"  Metchnikov  said,  again
patiently for him. His tone was far more peremptory than his words. "Also,
when  you  have an armored ship you should be able to deal with more risks
than the plain ones. Quit with the dumb questions, Broadhead."
   "Sorry."  I  was getting uncomfortable, crouched behind him and peering
over  his  shoulder, so that when he turned to look at me his jaw-whiskers
almost grazed my nose. I didn't want to change position.
   "So  look  up here in the yellow." He pointed to five brighter lines in
the  yellow  band.  "These relate to the profitibility of the mission. God
knows what we're measuring-or what the Heechee were measuring-but in terms
of  financial  rewards  to  the  crews,  there's a pretty good correlation
between  the number of lines in that frequency and the amount of money the
crews get."
   "Wow!"
   He  went  on  as  though  I  hadn't  said anything. "Now, naturally the
Heechee  didn't set up a meter to calibrate how much in royalties you or I
might  make.  It has to be measuring something else, who knows what? Maybe
it's  a  measure  of  population density in that area, or of technological
development.  Maybe  it's a Guide Michelin, and all they're saying is that
there  was  a  four-star  restaurant  in  that  area.  But  there  it  is.
Five-bar-yellow  expeditions  bring in a financial return, on the average,
that's fifty times as high as two-bar and ten times as high as most of the
others."
   He  turned  around again so that his face was maybe a dozen centimeters
from  mine,  his  eyes  staring  right into my eyes. "You want to see some
other settings?" he asked, in a tone of voice that demanded I say no, so I
did. "Okay." And then he stopped.
   I  stood  up and backed away to get a little more space. "One question,
Dane. You probably have a reason for telling me all this before it gets to
be public information. What is it?"
   "Right,"  he  said. "I want what's-her-name for crew if I go in a Three
or a Five."
   "Klara Moynlin."
   "Whatever.  She  handles  herself  well,  doesn't  take  up  much room,
knows-well,  she  knows  how  to get along with people better than I do. I
sometimes  have  difficulty in interpersonal relationships," he explained.
"Of  course, that's only if I take a Three or a Five. I don't particularly
want  to.  If  I can find a One, that's what I'm going to take out. But if
there  isn't  a One with a good setting available, I want somebody along I
can  rely  on, who won't get in my hair, who knows the ropes, can handle a
ship-all that. You can come, too, if you want."
   When I got back to my own room Shicky turned up almost before I started
to  unpack.  He was glad to see me. "I am sorry your trip was unfruitful,"
he  said out of his endless stock of gentleness and warmth. "It is too bad
about  your  friend  Kahane."  He  had brought me a flask of tea, and then
perched on the chest across from my hammock, just like the first time.
   I  mind  was  spinning with with visions of sugarplums coming out of my
talk with Dane Metchnikov. I couldn't help talking about it; I told Shicky
everything Dane had said.
   He  listened like a child to a fairy tale, his black eyes shining. "How
interesting,"  he  said.  "I  had  heard rumors that there was to be a new
briefing  for everyone. Just think, if we can go out without fear of death
or-" He hesitated, fluttering his wing-gauze.
   "It isn't that sure, Shicky," I said.
   "No,  of course not. But it is an improvement, I think you will agree?"
He  hesitated, watching me take a pull from the flask of almost flavorless
Japanese  tea. "Rob," he said, "if you go on such a trip and need an extra
man...  Well,  it is true that I would not be of much use in a lander. But
in orbit I am as good as anybody."
   "I  know  you  are,  Shicky."  I  tried  to put it tactfully. "Does the
Corporation know that?"
   "They would accept me as crew on a mission no one else wanted."
   "I  see."  I didn't say that I didn't really want to go on a mission no
one  else  wanted.  Shicky  knew that. He was one of the real oldtimers on
Gateway.  According to the rumor he had had a big wad stashed away, enough
for  Full Medical and everything. But he had given it away or lost it, and
stayed  on,  and  stayed  a  cripple. I know that he understood what I was
thinking, but I was a long way from understanding Shikitei Bakin.
   He  moved out of my way while I stowed my things, and we gossiped about
mutual friends. Sheri's ship had not returned. Nothing to worry about yet,
of  course. It could easily be out another several weeks without disaster.
A  Congolese  couple  from  just beyond the star-point in the corridor had
brought  back  a  huge  shipment  of prayer fans from a previously unknown
Heechee  warren,  on  a  planet around an F-2 star in the end of the Orion
spiral  arm.  They  had  split a million dollars three ways, and had taken
their share back to Mungbere. The Forehands...
   Louise  Forehand  stopped  in  while we were talking about them. "Heard
your  voices,"  she  said,  craning  over  to kiss me. "Too bad about your
trip."
   "Breaks of the game."
   "Well,  welcome  home,  anyway.  I  didn't  do any better than you, I'm
afraid.  Dumb  little star, no planets that we could find, can't think why
in  the  world  the  Heechee had a course setting for it." She smiled, and
stroked  the  muscles  at  the  back  of my neck fondly. "Can I give you a
welcome-home party tonight? Or are you and Klara-?"
   "I'd love it if you did," I said, and she didn't pursue the question of
Klara.  no  doubt  the  rumor had already got around; the Gateway tom-toms
beat  day  and night. She left after a few minutes. "Nice lady," I said to
Shicky,  looking  after  her.  "Nice  family.  Was  she  looking  a little
worried?"
   "I  fear  so,  Robinette,  yes. Her daughter Lois is on plus time. They
have had much sorrow in that family."
   I  looked  at him. He said, "No, not Willa or the father; they are out,
but not overdue. There was a son."
   "I know. Henry, I think. They called him Hat."
   "He  died  just  before  they came here. And now Lois." He inclined his
head,  then  flapped  politely over and picked up the empty tea flask on a
downstroke of his wing. "I must go to work now, Rob."
   "How's the ivy planting?"
   He said ruefully, "I no longer have that position, I'm afraid. Emma did
not consider me executive material."
   "Oh? What are you doing?"
   "I  keep  Gateway esthetically attractive," he said. "I think you would
call it 'garbage collector.'"
   I  didn't know what to say. Gateway was kind of a trashy place; because
of  the  low  gravity,  any scrap of paper or bit of featherweight plastic
that was thrown away was likely to float anywhere inside the asteroid. You
couldn't  sweep  the  floor. The first stroke set everything flying. I had
seen  the  garbage men chasing scraps of newsprint and fluffs of cigarette
ash  with little hand-pumped vacuum cleaners, and I had even thought about
becoming one if I had to. But I didn't like Shicky doing it.
   He  was  following  what  I  was thinking about him without difficulty.
"It's all right, Rob. Really, I enjoy the work. But-please; if you do need
a crewman, think of me."
   I took my bonus and paid up my per capita for three weeks in advance. I
bought  a  few items I needed-new clothes, and some music tapes to get the
sound  of  Mozart  and  Palestrina  out of my ears. That left me about two
hundred dollars in money.
   Two  hundred  dollars  was  a  lot like nothing at all. It meant twenty
drinks at the Blue Hell, or one chip at the blackjack table, or maybe half
a dozen decent meals outside the prospectors' commissary.
   So I had three choices. I could get another job and stall indefinitely.
Or  I  could  ship  out  within the three weeks. Or I could give up and go
home. None of the choices was attractive. But, provided I didn't spend any
money  on  anything  much, I didn't have to decide for, oh, a long time-as
long  as  twenty  days.  I resolved to give up smoking and boughten meals;
that  way  I  could  budget myself to a maximum spending of nine dollars a
day, so that my per capita and my cash would run out at the same time.
   I  called  Klara.  She  looked  and sounded guarded but friendly on the
P-phone,  so  I  spoke  guardedly and amiably to her. I didn't mention the
party,  and she didn't mention wanting to see me that night, so we left it
at  that: nowhere. That was all right with me. I didn't need Klara. At the
party  that  night  I  met  a new girl around called Doreen MacKenzie. She
wasn't  a  girl,  really; she was at least a dozen years older than I was,
and  she had been out five times. What was exciting about her was that she
had  really  hit  it once. She'd taken one and a half mil back to Atlanta,
spent the whole wad trying to buy herself a career as a PV singer-material
writer,  manager,  publicity  team, advertising, demo tapes, the works-and
when it hadn't worked she had come back to Gateway to try again. The other
thing was she was very, very pretty.
   But  after two days of getting to know Doreen I was back on the P-phone
to  Klara.  She  said,  "Come on down," and she sounded anxious; and I was
there  in  ten  minutes,  and  we were in bed in fifteen. The trouble with
getting to know Doreen was that I had got to know her. She was nice, and a
hell of a racing pilot, but she wasn't Klara Moynlin.
   When  we  were  lying  in  the hammock together, sweaty and relaxed and
spent,  Klara  yawned, ruffled my hair, pulled back her head and stared at
me.  "Oh,  shit," she said drowsily, "I think this is what they call being
in love."
   I  was gallant. "It's what makes the world go around. No, not 'it.' You
are."
   She  shook  her  head  regretfully.  "Sometimes I can't stand you," she
said.  "Sagittarians  never  make  it  with  Geminis.  I'm a fire sign and
you-well, Geminis can't help being confused."
   "I wish you wouldn't keep going on about that crap," I said.
   She didn't take offense. "Let's get something to eat."
   I  slid  over  the  edge  of  the hammock and stood up, needing to talk
without  touching  for  a moment. "Dear Klara," I said, "look, I can't let
you  keep  me because you'll be bitchy about it, sooner or later-or if you
aren't, I'll be expecting you to, and so I'll be bitchy to you. And I just
don't have the money. You want to eat outside the commissary, you do it by
yourself.  And I won't take your cigarettes, your liquor, or your chips at
the casino. So if you want to get something to eat go ahead, and I'll meet
you later. Maybe we could go for a walk."
   She sighed. "Geminis never know how to handle money," she told me, "but
they can be awfully nice in bed."
   We put our clothes on and went out and got something to eat, all right,
but  in the Corporation commissary, where you stand in line, carry a tray,
and eat standing up. The food isn't bad, if you don't think too much about
what  substrates  they  grow  it  on.  The price is right. It doesn't cost
anything.  They  promise  that if you eat all your meals in the commissary
you  will  have  one  hundred  plus percent of all the established dietary
needs. You will, too, only you have to eat all of everything to be sure of
that.  Single-cell  protein and vegetable protein come out incomplete when
considered  independently,  so it's not enough to eat the soybean jelly or
the bacterial pudding alone. You have to eat them both.
   The  other thing about Corporation meals is that they produce a hell of
a  lot  of  methane, which produces a hell of a lot of what all ex-Gateway
types remember as the Gateway fug.
   We  drifted down toward the lower levels afterward, not talking much. I
suppose  we  were both wondering where we were going. I don't mean just at
that moment. "Feel like exploring?" Klara asked.
   I  took  her hand as we strolled along, considering. That sort of thing
was  fun.  Some  of  the  old  ivy-choked  tunnels  that  no one used were
interesting,  and  beyond them were the bare, dusty places that no one had
troubled  even to plant ivy in. Usually there was plenty of light from the
ancient  walls  themselves,  still  glowing with that bluish Heechee-metal
sheen.  Sometimes-not  lately,  but  no  more  than  six  or  seven  years
ago-people  had  actually  found  Heechee artifacts in them, and you never
knew when you might stumble on something worth a bonus.
   |      The  Gateway  Anglican The Rev. Theo Durleigh,
   |    Chaplain  Parish  Communion 10:30 Sundays Evensong
   |                   by Arrangement
   |
   |      Eric  Manley,  who ceased to be my warden on 1
   |  December,  has  left  an indelible mark on Gateway
   |  All  Saints'  and  we owe him an incalculable debt
   |  for  placing  his multicompetence at our disposal.
   |  Born in Elatree, Herts., 51 years ago,he graduated
   |  as  an  LL.  B.  from the University of London and
   |  then   read  for  the  bar.  Subsequently  he  was
   |  employed  for  some  years in Perth at the natural
   |  gas  works.  If we are saddened for ourselves that
   |  he  is leaving us, it is tempered with joy that he
   |  has  now  achieved  his  heart's  desire  and will
   |  return  to  his  beloved  Hertfordshire,  where he
   |  expects  to  devote  his retirement years to civic
   |  affairs,  transcendental meditation, and the study
   |  of  plainsong.  A  new  warden will be elected the
   |  first   Sunday   we   attain   a  quorum  of  nine
   |  parishioners.
   But I couldn't keep up with her pace, and after a few moments she asked
if  I wanted to go back. Nothing is fun when you don't have a choice. "Why
not?"  I  said, but a few minutes later, when I saw where we were, I said,
"Let's go to the museum for a while."
   "Oh, right," she said, suddenly interested. "Did you know they've fixed
up  the  surround room? Metchnikov was telling me about it. They opened it
while we were out."
   So  we  changed  course,  dropped  two  levels and came out next to the
museum.  The  surround room was a nearly spherical chamber just beyond it.
It  was  big,  ten meters or more across, and in order to use it we had to
strap  on  wings  like  Shicky's,  hanging on a rack outside the entrance.
Neither  Klara  nor  I  had  ever used them before, but it wasn't hard. On
Gateway you weigh so little to begin with that flying would be the easiest
and  best  way to get around, if there were any places inside the asteroid
big enough to fly in.
   So we dropped through the hatch into the sphere, and were in the middle
of  a  whole  universe. The chamber was walled with hexagonal panels, each
one  of them projected from some source we could not see, probably digital
with liquid-crystal screens.
   "How pretty!" Klara cried.
   All  around us there was a sort of globarama of what the scouting ships
had  found.  Stars,  nebulae,  planets,  satellites.  Sometimes each plate
showed  its  own  independent  thing  so  that  there  were,  what was it,
something  like  a  hundred and twenty-eight separate scenes. Then, flick,
all  of  them  changed; flick again, and they began to cycle, some of them
holding  their  same  scene, some of them changing to something new. Flick
again,  and  one  whole  hemisphere  lit up with a mosaic view of the M-31
galaxy as seen from God-knew-where.
   "Hey," I said, really excited, "this is great!" And it was. It was like
being on all the trips any prospector had ever taken, without the drudgery
and the trouble and the constant fear.
   There was no one there but us, and I couldn't understand why. It was so
pretty.  You  would  think there would be a long line of people waiting to
get  in.  One  side  began  to run through a series of pictures of Heechee
artifacts,  as  discovered  by  prospectors:  prayer  fans  of all colors,
wall-lining  machines,  the  insides  of Heechee ships, some tunnels-Klara
cried  out  that  they were places she had been, back home on Venus, but I
don't  know  how she could tell. Then the pattern went back to photographs
from  space. Some of them wcre familiar. I could recognize the Pleadies in
one  quick  six- or eight-panel shot, which vanished and was replaced by a
view  of  Gateway  Two  from outside, two of the bright young stars of the
cluster  shining  in  reflection off its sides. I saw something that might
have  been the Horsehead Nebula, and a doughnutshaped puff of gas and dust
that  was  either  the  Ring  Nebula in Lyra or what an exploring team had
found a few orbits before and called the French Cruller, in the skies of a
planet  where  Heechee  digs  had  been detected, but not reached, under a
frozen sea.
   We  hung there for half an hour or so, until it began to look as though
we  were  seeing  the  same  things again, and then we fluttered up to the
hatch,  hung  up  the  wings, and sat down for a cigarette break in a wide
place in the tunnel outside the museum.
   Two  women  I  recognized vaguely as Corporation maintenance crews came
by,  carrying  rolled-up  strap-on wings. "Hi, Klara," one of them greeted
her. "Been inside?"
   Klara nodded. "It was beautiful," she said.
   "Enjoy it while you can," said the other one. "Next week it'll cost you
a  hundred  dollars.  We're  putting  in  a  P-phone  taped lecture system
tomorrow, and they'll have the grand opening before the next tourists show
up."
   "It's worth it," Klara said, but then she looked at me.
   I  became  aware that, in spite of everything, I was smoking one of her
cigarettes.  At  five  dollars a pack I couldn't afford very much of that,
but  I  made  up  my  mind  to  buy  at  least  one pack out of that day's
allowance, and to make sure she took as many from me as I took from her.
   "Want to walk some more?" she asked.
   "Maybe  a little later," I said. I was wondering how many men and women
had  died  to take the pretty pictures we had been watching, because I was
facing  one more time the fact that sooner or later I would have to submit
myself  again  to  the  lethal lottery of the Heechee ships, or give up. I
wondered  if the new information Metchnikov had given me was going to make
a  real difference. Everyone was talking about it now; the Corporation had
scheduled an all-phone announcement for the next day.
   "That reminds me," I said. "Did you say you'd seen Metchnikov?"
   "I  wondered  when you'd ask me about that," she said. "Sure. He called
and told me he'd shown the color-coding stuff to you. So?"
   I  stubbed  out the cigarette. "I think everybody in Gateway's going to
be fighting for the good launches, that's what I think."
   "But maybe Dane knows something. He's been working with the Corporation."
   "I  don't  doubt he does." I stretched and leaned back, rocking against
the low gravity, considering. "He's not that nice a guy, Klara. Maybe he'd
tell  us  if  there's  something  good  coming up, you know, that he knows
something special about. But he'll want something for it."
   Klara grinned. "He'd tell me."
   "What do you mean?"
   "Oh, he calls me once in a while. Wants a date."
   "Oh,  shit, Klara." I was feeling pretty irritated by then. Not just at
Klara,  and  not  just  about  Dane. About money. About the fact that if I
wanted  to  go back into the surround room next week it would cost me half
my  credit  balance.  About  the  dark, shadowed image looming up ahead in
time,  and  not very far ahead, when I would once again have to make up my
mind to do what I was scared silly to do again. "I wouldn't trust that son
of a bitch as far as-"
   "Oh,  relax,  Rob. He's not such a bad guy," she said, lighting another
cigarette  and  leaving  the  pack  where I could reach it if I wanted it.
"Sexually,  he might be kind of interesting. That raw, rough, rude Taurean
thing-anyway, you've got as much to offer him as I do."
   "What are you talking about?"
   She looked honestly surprised. "I thought you knew he swings both ways."
   "He's  never  given  me any indication-" But I stopped, remembering how
close  he  liked to get when he was talking to me, and how uncomfortable I
was with him inside my bodyspace.
   "Maybe you're not his type," she grinned. Only it wasn't a kindly grin.
A  couple  of Chinese crewmen, coming out of the museum, looked at us with
interest, and then politely looked away.
   "Let's get out of here, Klara."
   So  we  went  to  the  Blue Hell, and of course I insisted on paying my
share of the drinks. Forty-eight dollars down the tube in one hour. And it
wasn't  all  that  much  fun.  We wound up in her place and fell into bed,
although  the  drinks had given me a headache that was still there when we
finished. And the time was slipping by.
   There  are  people  who  never  pass a certain point in their emotional
development.  They  cannot live a normal free-and-easy, give-and-take life
with  a  sexual  partner for more than a short time. Something inside them
will  not  tolerate  happiness.  The better it gets, the more they have to
destroy it.
   Hacking around Gateway with Klara, I began to suspect that I was one of
those  people.  I  knew  Klara was. She had never sustained a relationship
with a man for more than a few months in her life; she told me so herself.
Already I was pretty close to a record with her. And already it was making
her edgy.
   In  some  ways  Klara  was a lot more adult and responsible than I ever
would be. The way she got to Gateway in the first place, for instance. She
didn't  win  a  lottery  to  pay  her  fare.  She  earned it and saved it,
painfully,  over  a  period  of  years.  She was a fully qualified airbody
driver  with  a  guide's  license and an engineering degree. She had lived
like a fish-farmer while earning an income that would have entitled her to
a three-room flat in the Heechee warrens on Venus, vacations on Earth, and
Major  Medical.  She  knew  more  than  I did about the growing of food on
hydrocarbon  substrates,  in  spite  of  all my years in Wyoming. (She had
invested  in  a  food factory on Venus, and for all her life she had never
put  a dollar into anything she didn't fully understand.) When we were out
together,  she  was  the  senior member of the crew. It was she Metchnikov
wanted as a shipmate-if he wanted anybody-not me. She had been my teacher!
   And  yet between the two of us she was as inept and unforgiving as ever
I  had  been with Sylvia, or with Deena, Janice, Liz, Ester, or any of the
other  two-week  romances  that had all ended badly in all the years after
Sylvia.  It  was, she said, because she was Sagitarius and I was a Gemini.
Sagittarians  were  prophets.  Sagittarians loved freedom. Us poor Geminis
were  just terribly mixed up and indecisive. "It's no wonder," she told me
gravely one morning, eating breakfast in her room (I accepted no more than
a  couple  of sips of coffee), "that you can't make your mind up to go out
again. It isn't just physical cowardice, dear Robinette. Part of your twin
nature  wants to triumph. Part wants to fail. I wonder which side you will
allow to win?"
   I gave her an ambiguous answer. I said, "Honey, go screw yourself." And
she laughed, and we got through that day. She had scored her point.
   The  Corporation  made  its  expected  announcement,  and  there was an
immense  flurry  of  conferring  and  planning  and exchanging guesses and
interpretations  among  all  of  us.  It  was an exciting time. Out of the
master  computer's  files  the Corporation pulled twenty launches with low
danger  factors  and  high  profit  expectancies.  They  were  subscribed,
equipped, and launched within a week.
   And I wasn't on any of them, and neither was Klara; and we tried not to
discuss why.
   Surprisingly,  Dane  Metchnikov  didn't  go out on any of them. He knew
something,  or said he did. Or didn't say he didn't when I asked him, just
looked  at  me in that glowering, contemptuous way and didn't answer. Even
Shicky  almost went out. He lost out in the last hour before launch to the
Finnish  boy who had never been able to find anyone to talk to; there were
four  Saudis  who wanted to stay together, and settled for the Finnish kid
to fill out a Five. Louise Forehand didn't go out, either, because she was
waiting for some member of her family to come back, so as to preserve some
sort  of  continuity.  You  could  eat  in  the Corporation commissary now
without  waiting  in  line,  and there were empty rooms all up and down my
tunnel. And one night Klara said to me, "Rob, I think I'm going to go to a
shrink."
   I  jumped.  It  was a surprise. Worse than that, a betrayal. Klara knew
about my early psychotic episode and what I thought of psychotherapists.
   I  withheld the first dozen things I thought of to say to her-tactical:
"I'm  glad;  it's about time"; hypocritical: "I'm glad, and please tell me
how  I can help"; strategic: "I'm glad, and maybe I ought to go, too, if I
could afford it." I refrained from the only truthful response, which would
have been: "I interpret this move on your part as a condemnation of me for
bending  your  head." I didn't say anything at all, and after a moment she
went on:
   "I need help, Rob. I'm confused."
   That  touched  me,  and I reached out for her hand. She just let it lay
limp  in  mine,  not  squeezing  back  and not pulling away. She said: "My
psychology  professor  used  to say that was the first step-no, the second
step. The first step when you have a problem is to know you have it. Well,
I've  known  that for some time. The second step is to make a decision: Do
you  want  to  keep  the problem, or do you want to do something about it?
I've decided to do something about it."
   "Where will you go?" I asked, carefully noncommittal.
   "I  don't  know.  The  groups  don't  seem to do much. There's a shrink
machine  available  on  the Corporation master computer. That would be the
cheapest way."
   "Cheap  is  cheap," I said. "I spent two years with the shrink machines
when I was younger, after I-I was kind of messed up."
   "And  since  then  you've  been  operating  for twenty years," she said
reasonably. "I'd settle for that. For now, anyway."
   I  patted  her hand. "Any step you take is a good step," I said kindly.
"I've  had  the feeling all along that you and I could get along better if
you  could clear some of that old birthright crap out of your mind. We all
do it, I guess, but I'd rather have you angry at me on my own than because
I'm acting as a surrogate for your father or something."
   She  rolled over and looked at me. Even in the pale Heecheemetal glow I
could see surprise on her face. "What are you talking about?"
   "Why,  your  problem, Klara. I know it took a lot of courage for you to
admit to yourself that you needed help."
   "Well,  Rob,"  she  said, "it did, only you don't seem to know what the
problem  is.  Getting  along  with  you  isn't the problem. You may be the
problem.  I  just  don't  know.  What I'm worried about is stalling. Being
unable  to  make  decisions.  Putting  it  off  so  long before I went out
again-and, no offense, picking a Gemini like you to go out with."
   "I hate it when you give me that astrology crap!"
   "You  do  have a mixed-up personality, Rob, you know you do. And I seem
to lean on that. I don't want to live that way."
   We  were both wide awake again by then, and there seemed to be two ways
for   things  to  go.  We  could  get  into  a  but-you-said-you-loved-me,
but-I-can't-stand-this  scene,  probably  ending with either more sex or a
wide-open  split;  or  we  could  do  something  to take our minds off it.
Klara's  thoughts  were  clearly  moving  in  the  same direction as mine,
because  she  slid out of the hammock and began pulling on clothes. "Let's
go up to the casino," she said brightly. "I feel lucky tonight."
   There werent any ships in, and no tourists. There weren't all that many
prospectors,  either,  with  so  many  shiploads going out in the past few
weeks.  Half  the  tables  at  the cisino were closed down, with the green
cloth  hoods  over them. Klara found a seat at the blackjack table, signed
for  a  stack of hundred-dollar markers, and the dealer let me sit next to
her  without playing. "I told you this was my lucky night," she said when,
after  ten  minutes,  she  was more than two thousand dollars ahead of the
house.
   "You're doing fine," I encouraged her, but actually it wasn't that much
fun  for  me. I got up and roamed around a little bit. Dane Metchnikov was
cautiously feeding five-dollar coins into the slots, but he didn't seem to
want  to talk to me. Nobody was playing baccarat. I told Klara I was going
to  get  a cup of coffee at the Blue Hell (five dollars, but in slow times
like  this  they would keep filling the cup for nothing). She flashed me a
quarter-proffle smile without ever taking her eyes off the cards.
   In the Blue Hell Louise Forehand was sipping a rocket-fuel-and-water...
well,  it  wasn't really rocket fuel, just old-fashioned white whisky made
out  of  whatever happened to be growing well that week in the hydroponics
tanks. She looked up with a welcoming smile, and I sat down next to her.
   She  had,  it  suddenly  occurred to me, a rather lonely time of it. no
reason she had to. She was-well, I don't know exactly what there was about
her,   but  she  seemed  like  the  only  nonthreatening,  nonreproachful,
nondemanding  person  on Gateway. Everybody else either wanted something I
didn't  want  to  give, or refused to take what I was offering. Louise was
something  else.  She  was at least a dozen years older than I, and really
very  good-looking.  Like  me,  she  wore  only  the  Corporation standard
clothes, short coveralls in a choice of three unattractive colors. But she
had  remade  them  for  herself,  converting the jumpsuit into a two-piece
outfit  with  tight shorts, bare midriff, and a loose, open sort of top. I
discovered  that  she  was watching me take inventory, and I suddenly felt
embarrassed. "You're looking good," I said.
   "Thanks, Rob. All original equipment, too," she bragged, and smiled. "I
never could afford anything else."
   "You  don't  need  anything  you  haven't  had  all  along," I told her
sincerely, and she changed the subject.
   "There's a ship coming in," she said. "Been a long time out, they say."
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel A3-7, Voyage 022D55. Crew S. Rigney, E.
   |  Tsien, M. Sindler.
   |      Transit   time   18  days  0  hours.  Position
   |  vicinity Xi Pegasi A.
   |      Summary. "We emerged in close orbit of a small
   |  planet  approximately  9  A.  U. from primary. The
   |  planet  is  ice-covered,  but  we detected Heechee
   |  radiation from a spot near the equator. Rigney and
   |  Mary   Sindler   landed   nearby   and  with  some
   |  difficulty-the location was mountainous-reached an
   |  ice-free  warm  area  within  which was a metallic
   |  dome.  Inside  the  dome  were a number of Heechee
   |  artifacts,   including  two  empty  landers,  home
   |  equipment  of  unknown use, and a heating coil. We
   |  succeeded  in  transporting  most  of  the smaller
   |  items  to the vessel. It proved impossible to stop
   |  the  heating coil entirely, but we reduced it to a
   |  low level of operation and stored it in the lander
   |  for  the  return.  Even  so,  Mary  and Tsien were
   |  seriously dehydrated and in coma when we landed."
   |      Corporation  evaluation: Heating coil analyzed
   |  and  rebuilt.  Award  of  $3,000,000  made to crew
   |  against  royalties.  Other  artifacts  not  as yet
   |  analyzed.  Award  of  $25,000 per kilo mass, total
   |  $675,000, made against future exploitation if any.
   Well,  I  knew  what  that meant to her, and that explained why she was
sitting  around  in  the Blue Hell instead of being asleep at that hour. I
knew  she  was  worried  about  her  daughter,  but  she wasn't letting it
paralyze her.
   She  had a very good attitude about prospecting, too. She was afraid of
going  out,  which  was  sensible.  But  she didn't let that keep her from
going,  which I admired a lot. She was still waiting for some other member
of her family to return before she signed on again, as they had agreed, so
that whoever did come back would always find family waiting.
   She  told  me  a little more about their background. They had lived, as
far  as  you  could call it living, in the tourist traps of the Spindle on
Venus, surviving on what they could eke out, mostly from the cruise ships.
There  was  a lot of money there, but there was also a lot of competition.
The  Forehands  had  at one time, I discovered, worked up a nightclub act:
singing,  dancing,  comedy routines. I gathered that they were not bad, at
least  by  Venus  standards. But the few tourists that were around most of
the  year  had  so  many other birds of prey battling for a scrap of their
flesh  that there just wasn't enough to nurture them all. Sess and the son
(the  one  who  had  died) had tried guiding, with an old airbody they had
managed  to  buy  wrecked  and  rebuild. no big money there. The girls had
worked  at all kinds of jobs. I was pretty sure that Louise, at least, had
been  a hooker for a while, but that hadn't paid enough to matter, either,
for  the same sorts of reasons as everything else. They were nearly at the
end of their rope when they managed to get to Gateway.
   It  wasn't the first time for them. They'd fought hard to get off Earth
in the first place, when Earth got so bad for them that Venus had seemed a
less  hopeless alternative. They had more courage, and more willingness to
pull up stakes and go, than any other people I'd ever met.
   "How did you pay for all this travel?" I asked.
   "Well,"  said  Louise,  finishing  her  drink and looking at her watch,
"going to Venus we traveled the cheapest way there is. High-mass load. Two
hundred  and  twenty other immigrants, sleeping in shoulder clamps, lining
up  for  two-minute  appointments  in  the  toilets, eating compressed dry
rations and drinking recycled water. It was a hell of a way to spend forty
thousand  dollars  apiece.  Fortunately, the kids weren't born yet, except
Hat, and he was small enough to go for quarter-fare."
   "Hat's your son? What-"
   "He died," she said.
   I waited, but when she spoke again what she said was: "They should have
a radio report from that incoming ship by now."
   "It would have been on the P-phone."
   She  nodded,  and  for  a moment looked worried. The Corporation always
makes  routine  reports  on  incoming  contacts.  If  they  don't  have  a
contact-well, dead prospectors don't check in on radio. So I took her mind
off  her  troubles  by telling her about Kiara's decision to see a shrink.
She  listened  and then put hand over mine and said: "Don't get sore, Rob.
Did you ever think of seeing a shrink yourself?"
   "I don't have the money, Louise."
   "Not  even for a group? There's a primal-scream bunch on L Darling. You
can  hear  them  sometimes.  And  there've  been  ads  everything-TA, Est,
patterning. Of course, a lot of them may have shipped out."
   But her attention wasn't on me. From where we were sitting we could see
the   entrance  to  the  casino,  where  one  of  the  croup  was  talking
interestedly  to  a  crewman  from the Chinese cruiser. Louise was staring
that way.
   "Something's  going  on," I said. I would have added, "Let's look," but
Louise was out of the chair and heading for the casino before me.
   Play  had  stopped. Everybody was clustered around the blackjack table,
where,  I  noticed,  Dane  Metchnikov was now sitting next to Klara in the
seat  I  had vacated, with a couple of twentyfive-dollar chips in front of
him.  And  in  the  middle of them was Shicky Bakin, perched on a dealer's
stool,  talking.  "No,"  he  was  saying  as I came up, "I do not know the
names. But it's a Five."
   "And they're all still alive?" somebody asked.
   "As  far as I know. Hello, Rob. Louise." He nodded politely to us both.
"I see you've heard?"
   "Not  really," Louise said, reaching out unconsciously to take my hand.
"Just that a ship is in. But you don't know the names?"
   Dane  Metchnikov  craned  his  head  around to glare at us. "Names," he
growled.  "Who cares? It's none of us, that's what's important. And it's a
big  one."  He  stood up. Even at that moment I noticed the measure of his
anger: he forgot to pick up his chips from the blackjack table. "I'm going
down  there," he announced. "I want to see what a once-in-a-lifetime score
looks like."
   The  cruiser  crews  had closed off the area, but one of the guards was
Francy Hereira. There were a hundred people around the dropshaft, and only
Hereira  and  two  girls  from  the  American  cruiser  to keep them back.
Metchnikov  plunged  through to the lip of the shaft, peering down, before
one  of  the  girls  chased  him  away.  We  saw  him  talking  to another
five-bracelet prospector. Meanwhile we could hear snatches of gossip:
   "... almost dead. They ran out of water."
   "Nah! Just exhausted. They'll be all right..."
   "... ten-million-dollar bonus if it's a nickel, and then the royalties!"
   Klara  took  Louise's elbow and pulled her toward the front. I followed
in  the  space  they  opened.  "Does  anybody know whose ship it was?" she
demanded.
   Hereira smiled wearily at her, nodded at me, and said: "Not yet, Klara.
They're  searching  them  now.  I  think  they're  going  to be all right,
though."
   Somebody behind me called out,"What did they find?"
   "Artifacts. New ones, that's all I know."
   "But it was a Five?" Klara asked.
   Hereira nodded, then peered down the shaft. "All right," he said, "now,
please back up, friends. They're bringing some of them up now."
   We  all  moved microscopically back, but it didn't matter; they weren't
getting  off  at  our  level,  anyway.  The  first  one up the cable was a
Corporation  bigwig  whose  name  I didn't remember, then a Chinese guard,
then  someone in a Terminal Hospital robe with a medic on the same grip of
the  cable,  holding  him to make sure he didn't fall. I knew the face but
not  the  name;  I  had  seen him at one of the farewell parties, maybe at
several  of them, a small, elderly black man who had been out two or three
times  without scoring. His eyes were open and clear enough, but he looked
infinitely  fatigued.  He  looked without astonishment at the crowd around
the shaft, and then was out of sight.
   I looked away and saw that Louise was weeping quietly, her eyes closed.
Klara had an arm around her. In the movement of the crowd I managed to get
next  to Kiara and look a question at her. "It's a Five," she said softly.
"Her daughter was in a Three."
   I  knew  Louise  had  heard that, so I patted her and said: "I'm sorry,
Louise,"  and  then  a  space  opened at the lip of the shaft and I peered
down.
   I  caught a quick glimpse of what ten or twenty million do looked like.
It was a stack of hexagonal boxes made out of Heechee metal, not more than
half  a  meter  across and less than a meter tall. Then Francy Hereira was
coaxing,  "Come  on,  Rob, get back will you?" And I stepped away from the
shaft  while  another Inspector in a hospital robe came up. She didn't see
me  as  she went past; in fact her eyes were closed. But I saw her. It was
Sheri.

   "I feel pretty foolish, Sigfrid," I say.
   "Is there some way I can make you feel more comfortable?"
   "You  can drop dead." He has done his whole room over in nursery-school
motifs,  for  Christ's  sake. And the worst part is Sigfrid himself. He is
trying me out with a surrogate mother this time. He is on the mat with me,
a  big  stuffed  doll,  the size of a human being, warm, soft, made out of
something like a bath towel stuffed with foam. It feels good, but-"I guess
I don't want you to treat me like a baby," I say, my voice muffled because
I'm pressing my face against the toweling.
   "Just relax, Robbie. It's all right."
   "In a pig's ass it is."
   He  pauses,  and then reminds me: "You were going to tell me about your
dream."
   "Yech."
   "I'm sorry, Robbie?"
   "I  mean I don't really want to talk about it. Sigfrid," I say quickly,
lifting  my  mouth  away  from  the toweling, "I might as well do what you
want. It was about Sylvia, kind of."
   "Kind of, Robbie?"
   "Well,  she  didn't look like herself, exactly. More like-I don't know,
someone  older,  I  think. I haven't thought of Sylvia in years really. We
were both kids...."
   "Please go on, Robbie," he says after a moment.
   I  put my arms around him, looking up contentedly enough at the wall of
circus-poster  animals and clowns. It is not in the least like any bedroom
I occupied as a child, but Sigfrid knows enough about me already, there is
no reason for me to tell him that.
   "The dream, Robbie?"
   "I dreamed we were working in the mines. It wasn't actually food mines.
It  was, physically, I would say more like the inside of a Five-one of the
Gateway  ships,  you  know? Sylvia was in a kind of a tunnel that went off
it."
   "The tunnel went off?"
   "Now,  don't rush me into some kind of symbolism, Sigfrid. I know about
vaginal images and all that. When I say 'went off,' I mean that the tunnel
started  in  the  place  where  I  was  and led direction away from it." I
hesitate,  then  tell him the hard part: "Then her tunnel caved in. Sylvia
was trapped."
   I  sit  up.  "What's  wrong  with  that," I explain, "is that it really
couldn't happen. You only tunnel in order to plant charge to loosen up the
shale. All the real mining is scoop-shovel stuff. Sylvia's job would never
have put her in that position."
   "I don't think it matters if it could really have happened, Robbie."
   "I  suppose  not.  Well, there was Sylvia, trapped inside the collapsed
tunnel.  I  could see the heap of shale stirring. It wasn't real shale. It
was  fluffy  stuff,  more  like  scrap paper. She had a shovel and she was
digging  her  way  out.  I  thought she was going to be all right. She was
digging  a  good escape hole for herself. I waited her to come out... only
she didn't come out."
   Sigfrid,  in  his incarnation as a teddy-bear, lies warm and snuggly in
my  arms.  It  is good to feel him there. Of course, he isn't in there. He
isn't  really  anywhere,  except maybe in the central stores in Washington
Heights,  where the big machines are kept. All I have is his remote-access
terminal in a bunny suit.
   "Is there anything else, Robbie?"
   "Not really. Not part of the dream, anyway. But-well, have a feeling. I
feel  as though I kicked Klara in the head to keep her from coming out. As
though I was afraid the rest of the tunnel was going to fall on me."
   |  Out in the holes where the Heechee hid,
   |  Out in the caves of the stars,
   |  Sliding the tunnels they slashed and slid,
   |  Healing the Heechee-hacked scars,
   |  We're coming through!
   |  Little lost Heechee, we're looking for you.
   "What do you mean by a 'feeling,' Rob?"
   "What  I  said.  It  wasn't part of the dream. It was just that-I don't
know."
   He  waits, then he tries a different approach. "Rob, Are aware that the
name you said just then was 'Klara,' not 'Sylvia'?"
   "Really? That's funny. I wonder why."
   He waits, then he prods a little. "Then what happened, Rob?"
   "Then I woke up."
   I  roll  over on my back and look up at the ceiling, which was textured
tile with glittery five-pointed stars pasted to it. "That's all there is,"
I  say.  Then  I  add, conversationally, "Sigfrid, I wonder if all this is
getting anywhere."
   "I don't know if I can answer that question, Rob."
   "If you could," I say, "I would have made you do it like this." I still
have  S.  Ya.  's  little  piece  of paper, which gives kind of security I
prize.
   "I  think,"  he says, "that there is somewhere to get. By that I mean I
think  there is something in your mind that you don't want to think of, to
which this dream is related."
   "Something about Sylvia, for Christ's sake? That was years ago."
   "That doesn't really matter, does it?"
   "Oh,  shit. You bore me, Sigfrid! You really do." Then I say, "Say, I'm
getting angry. What does that mean?"
   "What do you think it means, Rob?"
   "If  I  knew  I  wouldn't have to ask you. I wonder. Am I trying to cop
out? Getting angry because you're getting close to something?"
   "Please don't think about the process, Rob. Just tell me how you feel."
   "Guilty," I say at once, without knowing that's what I'm going to say.
   "Guilty about what?"
   "Guilty  about...  I'm  not sure." I lift my wrist to look at my watch.
We've  got  twenty  minutes  yet.  A  hell  of  a lot can happen in twenty
minutes,  and  I stop to think about whether I want to leave really shaken
up. I've got a game of duplicate lined up for this afternoon, and I have a
good  chance  to  get into the finals. If I don't mess it up. If I keep my
concentration.
   "I wonder if I oughtn't to leave early today, Sigfrid," I say.
   "Guilty about what, Rob?"
   "I'm  not  sure I remember." I stroke the bunny neck and chuckle. "This
is really nice, Sigfrid, although it took me a while to get used to it."
   "Guilty about what, Rob?"
   I scream: "About murdering her, you jerk!"
   "You mean in your dream?"
   "No! Really. Twice."
   I  know  I  am  breathing  hard,  and  I  know  Sigfrid's  sensors  are
registering  it.  I  fight  to  get control of myself, so he won't get any
crazy ideas. I go over what I have just said in my mind, to tidy it up. "I
didn't  really  murder Sylvia, that is. But I tried! Went after her with a
knife!"
   Sigfrid, calm, reassuring: "It says in your case history that you had a
knife  in  your  hand  when  you  had  a quarrel with your friend, yes. It
doesn't say you 'went after her.'"
   "Well,  why  the  hell  do you think they put me away? It's just luck I
didn't cut her throat."
   "Did you, in fact, use the knife against her at all?"
   "Use  it?  No.  I  was  too mad. I threw it on the floor and got up and
punched her."
   "If  you  were  really trying to murder her, wouldn't you have used the
knife?"
   "Ah!"  Only  it is more like "yech"; the word you sometimes see written
as "pshaw." "I only wish you'd been there when it happened, Sigfrid. Maybe
you would have talked them out of putting me away."
   The  whole  session is going sour. I know it's always a mistake to tell
him  about  my  dreams.  He  twists  them  around.  I sit up, looking with
contempt  at  the crazy furnishings Sigfrid has dreamed up for my benefit,
and I decide to let him have it, straight from the shoulder.
   "Sigfrid,"  I  say,  "as  computers  go, you're a nice guy, and I enjoy
these sessions with you in an intellectual way. But I wonder if we haven't
gone  about  as far as we can go. You're just stirring up old, unnecessary
pain, and I frankly don't know why I let you do that to me."
   "Your dreams are full of pain, Rob."
   "So  let  it  stay  in  my dreams. I don't want to go back to that same
stale  kind of crap they used to give me at the Institute. Maybe I do want
to  go  to  bed with my mother. Maybe I hate my father because he died and
deserted me. So what?"
   "I  know  that  is a rhetorical question, Rob, but the way to deal with
these things is to bring them out into the open."
   "For what? To make me hurt?"
   "To let the inside hurt come out where you can deal with it."
   "Maybe  it  would be simpler all around if I just made up my mind to go
on  hurting a little bit, inside. As you say, I'm well compensated, right?
I'm  not  denying  that  I've  got  something  out  this. There are times,
Sigfrid, when we get through with a session and I really get a lift out of
it.  I  go  out  of here with my head full of new thoughts, and the sun is
bright  on the dome and the clean and everybody seems to be smiling at me.
But not lately. Lately I think it's very boring and unproductive, and what
would you say if I told you I wanted to pack it in?"
   "I would say that that was your decision to make, Rob. It always is."
   "Well, maybe I'll do that." The old devil outwaits me. He knows I'm not
going  to  make  that decision, and he is giving me time to realize it for
myself. Then he says:
   "Rob? Why did you say you murdered her twice?"
   I  look  at my watch before I answer, and I say, "I guess it was just a
slip of the tongue. I really do have to go now, Sigfrid."
   I  pass up the time in his recovery room, because I don't actually have
anything to recover from. Besides I just want to get out of there. Him and
his  dumb  questions.  He  acts  so  wise  and  subjective but what does a
teddy-bear know?

   I  went  back  to my own room that night, but it took me a long time to
get  to  sleep; and Shicky woke me up early to tell me what was happening.
There had been only three survivors, and their base award had already been
announced:  seventeen  million  five  hundred  and fifty thousand dollars.
Against royalties.
   That drove the sleepies out of my eyes. "For what?" I demanded.
   Shicky  said, "For twenty-three kilograms of artifacts. They think it's
a repair kit. Possibly for a ship, since that is where they found it, in a
lander  on  the surface of the planet. But at least they are tools of some
sort."
   "Tools."  I  got  up, got rid of Shicky, and plodded down the tunnel to
the  community shower, thinking about tools. Tools could mean a lot. Tools
could  mean a way to open the drive mechanism in the Heechee ships without
blowing  up  everything around. Tools could mean finding out how the drive
worked  and  building  our own. Tools could mean almost anything, and what
they  certainly  meant  was a cash award of seventeen million five hundred
and fifty thousand dollars, not counting royalties, divided three ways.
   One of which could have been mine.
   |      A NOTE ON NEUTRON STARS
   |
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Now,  you  get a star that has
   |  used  up  its  fuel,  and it collapses. When I say
   |  "collapses,"  I  mean  it's shrunk so far that the
   |  whole  thing,  that starts out with maybe the mass
   |  and  volume  of  the  sun, is squeezed into a ball
   |  maybe ten kilometers across. That's dense. If your
   |  nose was made out of neutron star stuff, Susie, it
   |  would weigh more than Gateway does.
   |      Question. Maybe even more than you do, Yuri?
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Don't  make  jokes  in  class.
   |  Teacher's   sensitive.   Anyway,   good,  close-in
   |  readings  on  a neutron star would be worth a lot,
   |  but  I  don't advise you to use your lander to get
   |  them.  You need to be in a fully armored Five, and
   |  then  I  wouldn't come much closer than a tenth of
   |  an  A.  U. And watch it. It'll seem as if probably
   |  you  could  get  closer,  but the gravity shear is
   |  bad.  It's  practically  a  point source, you see.
   |  Steepest  gravity gradient you'll ever see, unless
   |  you  happen  to  get  next  to  a  black hole, God
   |  forbid.
   It  is  hard  to  get a figure like $5,850,000 out of your mind (not to
mention  royalties)  when  you  think  that  if you had been a little more
foreseeing  in  your  choice  of girlfriends you could have had it in your
pocket.  Call  it  six  million dollars. At my age and health I could have
bought  paid-up  Full  Medical for less than half of that, which meant all
the  tests,  therapies,  tissue  replacements,  and organ transplants they
could  cram into me for the rest of my life which would have been at least
fifty years longer than I could expect without it. The other three million
plus  would  have  bought  me  a  couple  of homes, a career as a lecturer
(nobody  was more in demand than a successful prospector), a steady income
for  doing  commercials  on  PV,  women,  food, cars, travel, women, fame,
women... and, again, there were always the royalties. They could have come
to  anything  at  all, depending on what the R&D people managed to do with
the tools. Sheri's find was exactly what Gateway was all about: the pot of
gold at the end of the rainbow.
   It  took  an  hour  for  me  to  get down to the hospital, three tunnel
segments  and  five  levels  in the dropshaft. I kept changing my mind and
going back.
   When I finally managed to purge my mind of envy (or at least to bury it
where  I didn't think it was going to show) and turned up at the reception
desk, Sheri was asleep anyway. "You can go in," said the ward nurse.
   "I don't want to wake her up."
   "I  don't  think  you  could," he said. "Don't force it, of course. But
she's allowed visitors."
   She  was  in  the  lowest of three bunks in a twelve-bed room. Three or
four  of  the  others  were  occupied,  two  of  them behind the isolation
curtains,  milky plastic that you could see through only vaguely. I didn't
know who they were. Sheri herself looked quite peacefully resting, one arm
under  her  head,  her  pretty  eyes  closed  and her strong, dimpled chin
resting  on  her  wrist.  Her  two  companions  were in the same room, one
asleep, one sitting under a holoview of Saturn's rings. I had met him once
or  twice,  a  Cuban or Venezuelan or something like that from New Jersey.
The  only name I could remember for him was Manny. We chatted for a while,
and  he promised to tell Sheri I had been there. I left and went for a cup
of coffee at the commissary, thinking about their trip.
   They  had  come  out  near  a  tiny,  cold  planet  way  out from a K-6
orange-red cinder of a star, and according to Manny, they hadn't even been
sure   it   was   worth  the  trouble  of  landing.  The  readings  showed
Heechee-metal  radiation,  but not much; and almost all of it, apparently,
was  buried  under  carbon-dioxide  snow.  Manny was the one who stayed in
orbit. Sheri and the other three went down and found a Heechee dig, opened
it  with  great effort and, as m found it empty. Then they tracked another
trace  and  found the lander. They had had to blast to get it open, and in
the  process two of the prospectors lost integrity of their spacesuits-too
close  to  the  blast,  I  guess.  By  the time they realized they were in
trouble  it was too late for them. They froze. Sheri and the other crewman
tried  to  get  them  back  into  their own lander; it must have been pure
misery  and  fear  the whole time, and at the end they had to give up. The
other  man  had made one more trip to the abandoned lander, found the tool
kit  in  it,  managed  to get it back to their lander. Then they had taken
off,  leaving  the  two  casualties fully frozen behind them. But they had
overstayed their limit-they were physical wrecks when they docked with the
orbiter.  Manny  wasn't  clear on what happened after that, but apparently
they  failed  to  secure  the lander's air supply and had lost a good deal
from  it; so they were on short oxygen rations all the way home. The other
man  was  worse  off than Sheri. There was a good chance of residual brain
damage,  and  his  $5,850,000  might  not do him any good. But Sheri, they
said, would be all right once she recovered from plain exhaustion.
   I  didn't  envy them the trip. All I envied them was the results. I got
up and got myself another cup of coffee in the commissary. As I brought it
back to the corridor outside, where there were a few benches under the ivy
planters,  I  became  aware  something was bugging me. Something about the
trip.  About  the fact that it had been a real winner, one of the all-time
greats in Gateway's history...
   I  dumped  the  coffee,  cup  and  all,  into  a  disposal hole out the
commissary  and headed for the schoolroom. It was only a minutes walk away
and  there  was no one else there. That was good because I wasn't ready to
talk  to  anyone yet about what had occurred to me. I keyed the P-phone to
information  access  and  got the settings for Sheri's trip; they were, of
course,  a  matter  of  public  record.  Then  I went down to the practice
capsule, again hitting lucky because there was no one around, and set them
up  on  the  course selector. Of course, I got good color immediately; and
when  I  pressed the fine-tuner the whole board turned bright pink, except
for the rainbow of colors along the side.
   There was only one dark line in the blue part of the spectrum.
   Well, I thought, so much for Metchnikov's theory about danger readings.
They  had  lost forty percent of the crew on that mission, and that struck
me  as being quite adequately dangerous; but according to what he had told
me, the really hairy ones showed six or seven of those bands.
   And in the yellow?
   According  to Metchnikov, the more bright bands in the yellow, the more
financial reward from a trip.
   Only in this one there were no bright bands in the yellow at all. There
were two thick black "absorption" lines. That's all.
   I  thumbed  the  selector  off  and  sat  back. So the great brains had
labored  and  brought forth a mouse again: what they had interpreted as an
indication  of  safety didn't really mean you were safe, and what they had
interpreted as a promise of good results didn't seem to have any relevance
to the first mission in more than a year that had really come up rich.
   Back to square one, and back to being scared.
   For the next couple of days I kept pretty much to myself.
   There  are  supposed  to  be eight hundred kilometers of tunnels inside
Gateway.  You wouldn't think there could be that many in a little chunk of
rock  that's only about ten kilometers across. But even so, only about two
percent  of  Gateway  is  airspace; the rest is solid rock. I saw a lot of
those eight hundred kilometers.
   I  didn't  cut  myself  off completely from human companionship, I just
didn't  seek  it  out.  I  saw  Klara now and then. I wandered around with
Shicky  when  he was off duty, although it was tiring for him. Sometimes I
wandered  by  myself,  sometimes with chancemet friends, sometimes tagging
along  after  a  tourist  group. The guides knew me and were not averse to
having  me  along  (I had been out! even if I didn't wear a bangle), until
they  got  the  idea that I was thinking of guiding myself. Then they were
less friendly.
   They  were  right.  I  was  thinking  of  it. I was going to have to do
something  sooner  or later. I would have to go out, or I would have to go
home;  and  if  I  wanted to defer decision on either of those two equally
frightening  prospects,  I  would  have  to decide at least to try to make
enough money to stay put.
   |      A NOTE ON PRAYER FANS
   |
   |      Question.  You  didn't  tell us anything about
   |  Heechee  prayer fans, and we see more of them than
   |  anything else.
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  What  do  you want me to
   |  tell you, Susie?
   |      Question.  Well,  I  know what they look like.
   |  Sort  of  like a rolled-up ice-cream cone made out
   |  of  crystal.  All  different colors of crystal. If
   |  you hold one right and press on it with your thumb
   |  it opens up like a fan.
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  That's what I know, too.
   |  They've been analyzed, same as fire pearls and the
   |  blood diamonds. But don't ask me what they're for.
   |  I  don't  think the Heechee fanned themselves with
   |  them,  and  I  don't  think  they  prayed, either;
   |  that's  just what the novelty dealers called them.
   |  The  Heechee  left  them  all over the place, even
   |  when  they  tidied  everything  else up. I suppose
   |  they  had  a reason. I don't have a clue what that
   |  reason was, but if I ever find out I'll tell you.
   When  Sheri got out of the hospital we had a hell of a party for her, a
combination  of welcome home, congratulations, and goodbye, Sheri, because
she  was  leaving  for Earth the next day. She was shaky but cheerful, and
although  she  wasn't up to dancing she sat hugging me in the corridor for
half  an  hour,  promising  to  miss  me. I got quite drunk. It was a good
chance for it; the liquor was free. Shed and her Cuban friend were picking
up the check. In fact, I got so drunk that I never did get to say good-bye
to  Shed,  because I had to head for the toilet and chuck. Drunk as I was,
that  struck  me as a pity; it was genuine scotch-from-Scotland Gleneagle,
none of your local white lightning boiled out of God-knows-what.
   Throwing  up  cleared my head. I came out and leaned against a wall, my
face  buried  in  the ivy, breathing hard, and by and by enough oxygen got
into my bloodstream that I could recognize Francy Hereira standing next to
me. I even said, "Hello, Francy."
   He grinned apologetically. "The smell. It was a little strong."
   "Sorry," I said huffily, and he looked surprised.
   "No,  what  do  you  mean?  I mean it is bad enough on the cruiser, but
every  time  I  come  to  Gateway I wonder how you live through it. And in
those rooms-phew!"
   "No  offense  taken," I said grandly, patting his shoulder. "I must say
goodnight to Sheri."
   "She's gone, Rob. Got tired. They took her back to the hospital."
   "In that case," I said, "I will only say goodnight to you." I bowed and
lurched  down  the  tunnel.  It  is  difficult  being drunk in nearly zero
gravity.  You  long for the reassurance of a hundred kilos of solid weight
to  hold  you  to  the  ground. I understand, from what was reported to me
later,  that  I  pulled  a solid rack of ivy off the wall, and I know from
what  I  felt  the  next morning that I bashed my head into something hard
enough  to  leave a purplish bruise the size of my ear. I became conscious
of  Francy  coming up behind me and helping me navigate, and about halfway
home  I  became  conscious  that there was someone else on my other arm. I
looked,  and  it  was Klara. I have only the most confused recollection of
being put to bed, and when I woke up the  next morning,  desperately  hung
over, I was astonished to find that Klara was in it, too.
   |      CORPORATION REPORT; ORBIT 37
   |
   |      74  vessels returned from launches during this
   |  period,  with  a  total crew of 216. 20 additional
   |  vessels were judged lost, with a total crew of 54.
   |  In addition 19 crew members were killed or died of
   |  injuries,  although  the  vessels  returned. Three
   |  returning  vessels  were damaged past the point of
   |  feasible repair.
   |      Landing  reports:  19.  Five  of  the surveyed
   |  planets  had  life  at  the  microscopic  level or
   |  higher;  one  possessed structured plant or animal
   |  life, none intelligent.
   |      Artifacts: Additional samples of usual Heechee
   |  equipment  were  returned. no artifacts from other
   |  sources. no previously unknown Heechee artifacts.
   |      Samples:   Chemical   or  mineral,  145.  None
   |  adjudged    of   sufficient   value   to   justify
   |  exploitation.  Living  organic, 31. Three of these
   |  were  judged  hazardous  and disposed of in space.
   |  None found of exploitable value.
   |      Science awards in period: $8,754,500.
   |      Other   cash   awards   in  period,  including
   |  royalties:   $357,856,000.  Awards  and  royalties
   |  arising from new discoveries in period (other than
   |  science awards): 0.
   |      Personnel   grounded  or  exiting  Gateway  in
   |  period:  151.  Lost operationally: 75 (including 2
   |  lost  in lander exercises). Medically unfit at end
   |  of year: 84. Total losses: 310.
   |      New   personnel   arriving   in  period:  415.
   |  Returned  to  duty:  66.  Total  increment  during
   |  period: 481. Net gain in personnel: 171.
   I  got  up  as  inconspicuously as I could and headed for the bathroom,
needing  a  lot to throw up some more. It took quite a while, and I topped
it   off  with  another  shower,  my  second  in  four  days  and  a  wild
extravagance,  considering my financial state. But I felt a little better,
and  when  I  got  back to my room Klara had got up, fetched tea, probably
from Shicky, and was waiting for me.
   "Thanks," I said, meaning it. I was infinitely dehydrated.
   "A sip at a time, old horse," she said anxiously, but I knew enough not
to force much into my stomach. I managed two swallows and stretched out in
the hammock again, but by then I was pretty sure I would live.
   "I didn't expect to see you here," I said.
   "You  were,  ah, insistent," she told me. "Not much on performance. But
awfully anxious to try."
   "Sorry about that."
   She  reached  over  and  squeezed my foot. "Not to worry. How've things
been, anyway?"
   "Oh, all right. It was a nice party. I don't remember seeing you there?"
   She  shrugged.  "I  came  late. Wasn't invited, as a matter of fact." I
didn't  say  anything;  I  had  been  aware  Klara  and Shed were not very
friendly,  and assumed it was because of me. Klara, reading my mind, said,
"I've  never cared for Scorpios, especially unevolved ones with that awful
huge  jaw.  Never get an intelligent, spiritual thought from one of them."
Then  she  said,  to  be  fair, "But she has courage, you have to give her
that."
   "I don't believe I'm up to this argument," I said.
   "Not  an argument, Rob." She leaned over, cradling my head. She smelled
sweaty  and female; rather nice, in some circumstances, but not quite what
I wanted right then.
   "Hey," I said. "What ever became of musk oil?"
   "What?"
   "I  mean,"  I said, suddenly realizing something that had been true for
quite  a  while,  "you used to wear that perfume a lot. That was the first
thing I remember noticing about you." I thought of Francy Hereira's remark
about  the  Gateway smell and realized it had been a long time since I had
noticed Klara smelling particularly nice.
   "Honey-Rob, are you trying to start an argument with me?"
   "Certainly not. But I'm curious. When did you stop wearing it?"
   She shrugged and didn't answer, unless looking annoyed is an answer. It
was  enough  of an answer for me, because I'd told her often enough that I
liked  the  perfume.  "So how are you doing with your shrink?" I asked, to
change the subject.
   It  didn't  seem  to be any improvement. Kiara said, without warmth, "I
guess  you're feeling pretty rotten with that remark. I think I'll go home
now."
   "No,  I  mean  it,"  I insisted. "I'm curious about your progress." She
hadn't  told  me a word, though I knew she had signed up weeks before. She
seemed  to  spend two or three hours a day with him. Or it-she had elected
to try the machine service from the Corporation puter, I knew.
   "Not bad," she said distantly.
   "Get over your father fixation yet?" I inquired.
   Klara said, "Rob, did it ever occur to you that you might get some good
out of a little help yourself?"
   "Funny  you  should say that. Louise Forehand said the same thing to me
the other day."
   "Not funny. Think about it. See you later."
   I  dropped  my head back after she had gone and closed my eyes. Go to a
shrink!  What  did  I need with that? All I needed was one lucky find like
Shed's...
   And  all  I  needed  to  make  that was-was-Was the guts to sign up for
another trip.
   But that kind of guts, for me, seemed to be in very short supply.
   Time  was  slipping  by,  or  I  was destroying it, and the way I began
destroying  one  day was to go to the museum. They had already installed a
complete  holo  set of Shed's find. I played them over two or three times,
just to see what seventeen million five hundred and fifty thousand dollars
looked  like.  It  mostly  looked like irrelevant junk. That was when each
piece  was  displayed on its own. There were about ten little prayer fans,
proving, I guess, that the Heechee liked to include a few art objects even
in  a  tire-repair  kit.  Or  whatever  the  rest  of  it was: things like
tri-bladed screwdrivers with flexible shafts, things like socket wrenches,
but  made  of  some  soft  material; things like electric test probes, and
things  like  nothing  you  ever  saw before. Spread out item by item they
seemed  pretty  random, but the way they fit into each other, and into the
flat  nested  boxes that made up the set, was a marvel of packing economy.
Seventeen  million  five  hundred and fifty thousand dollars, and if I had
stayed with Shed I could have been one of the shareholders.
   Or one of the corpses.
   I  stopped  off  at  Klara's place and hung around for a while, but she
wasn't home. It wasn't her usual time for being shrunk. On the other hand,
I  had  lost  track  of  Klara's usual times. She had found another kid to
mother  when  its parents were busy: a little black girl, maybe four years
old,  who had come up with a mother who was an astrophysicist and a father
who  was  an  exobiologist.  And what else Klara had found to keep herself
busy I was not sure.
   I  drifted  back  to my own room, and Louise Forehand peered out of her
door  and  followed me in. "Rob," she said urgently, "do you know anything
about a big danger bonus coming up?"
   I  made  room  for  her  on  the  pad. "Me? No. Why would I?" Her pale,
muscular face was tauter than ever, I could not tell why.
   "I  thought maybe you'd heard something. From Dane Metchnikov, maybe. I
know  you're  close  to  him,  and  I've  seen him talking to Klara in the
schoolroom." I didn't respond to that, I wasn't sure what I wanted to say.
"There's  a  rumor  that  there's  a  science trip coming up that's pretty
hairy. And I'd like to sign on for it."
   I put my arm around her. "What's the matter, Louise?"
   "They posted Willa dead." She began to cry.
   I  held  her for a while and let her cry it out. I would have comforted
her  if I had known how, but what comfort was there to give? After a while
I got up and rummaged around in my cupboard, looking for a joint Klara had
left there a couple days before. I found it, lighted it, passed it to her.
   Louise  took a long, hard pull, and held it for quite a while. Then she
puffed  out.  "She's dead, Rob," she said. She was over crying now, somber
but  relaxed;  even  the muscles around her neck and up and down her spine
were tension-free.
   "She might come back yet, Louise."
   She  shook her head. "Not really. The Corporation posted her ship lost.
It  might come back, maybe. Willa won't be alive in it. Their last stretch
of  rations would have run out two weeks ago. "She stared into space for a
moment,  then sighed and roused herself to take another pull on the joint.
"I  wish  Sess  were here," she said, leaning back and stretching; I could
feel the play of muscles against the palm of my hand.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      I NEED your courage to go for any halfmil plus
   |  bonus. Don't ask me. Order me. 87-299.
   |
   |      PUBLIC   AUCTION  unclaimed  personal  effects
   |  nonreturnees.   Corporation   Area  Charlie  Nine,
   |  1300-1700 tomorrow.
   |
   |      YOUR  DEBTS are paid when you achieve Oneness.
   |  He/She  is  Heechee and He/She Forgives. Church of
   |  the Marvelously Maintained Motorcycle. 88-344.
   |
   |      MONOSEXUALS  ONLY for mutual sympathy only. no
   |  touching. 87-913.
   The  dope  was  hitting  her, I could see. I knew it was hitting me. It
wasn't  any  of  your  usual Gateway windowbox stuff, sneaked in among the
ivy.  Klara  had got hold of pure Naples Red from one of the cruiser boys,
shade-grown on the slopes of Mount Vesuvius between the rows of vines that
made Lacrimae Cristi wine. She turned toward me and snuggled her chin into
my  neck.  "I  really love my family," she said, calmly enough. "I wish we
had hit lucky here. We're about due for some luck."
   "Hush, honey," I said, nuzzling into her hair. Her hair led to her ear,
and  her  ear  led  to her lips, and step by step we were making love in a
timeless,  gentle,  stoned way. It was very relaxed. Louise was competent,
unanxious,  and  accepting.  After  a  couple of months of Klara's nervous
paroxysms  it  was  like coming home to Mom's chicken soup. At the end she
smiled,  kissed me, and turned away. She was very still, and her breathing
was  even.  She lay silent for a long time, and it wasn't until I realized
that my wrist was getting damp that I knew she was crying again.
   "I'm  sorry,  Rob,"  she  said when I began to pat her. "It's just that
we've  never  had  any luck. Some days I can live with that fact, and some
days not. This is one of the bad ones."
   "You will."
   "I don't think so. I don't believe it anymore."
   "You got here, didn't you? That's pretty lucky."
   She  twisted herself around to face me, her eyes scanning mine. I said,
"I  mean, think of how many billion people would give their left testicles
to be here."
   Louise  said slowly, "Rob-" She stopped. I started to speak but she put
her hand over my lips. "Rob," she said, "do you know how we managed to get
here?"
   "Sure. Sess sold his airbody."
   "We  sold  more  than that. The airbody brought a little over a hundred
thousand.  That  wasn't  enough  for even one of us. We got the money from
Hat."
   "Your son? The one that died?"
   She  said,  "Hat  had a brain tumor. They caught it in time, or anyway,
almost  in  time.  It was operable. He could have lived, oh, I don't know,
ten  years at least. He would have been messed up some. His speech centers
were  affected, and so was his motor control. But he could have been alive
right now. Only-" She her hand off my chest to rub it across her face, but
she  wasn't  crying.  "He  didn't  want  us  to spend the airbody money on
Medical for him. It would have just about paid for the surgery and then we
would have been broke again. So what he did, he sold himself, Rob. He sold
off  all  his parts. More than just a left testicle. All of him. They were
fine,  first-quality  Nordic  male twentytwo-year-old parts, and they were
worth  a  bundle. He signed himself over to the medics and they-how do you
say it?-put him to sleep. There must be pieces of Hat in a dozen different
people now. They sold off everything for transplants, and they gave us the
money.  Close  to  a  million dollars. Got us here, with some to spare. So
that's where our luck came from, Rob."
   I said, "I'm sorry."
   "For  what? We just don't have the luck, Rob. Hat's dead. Willa's dead.
God  knows  where  my husband is, or our only surviving kid. And I'm here,
and, Rob, half the time I wish with all my heart that I were dead too."
   I  left  her  sleeping  in  my bed and wandered down to Central Park. I
called  Klara, found her out, left a message to say where I was, and spent
the  next  hour  or  so  on my back, looking up mulberries ripening on the
tree.  There  was  no  one there except a couple of tourists taking a fast
look  through  before  their  ship  left.  I didn't pay attention to them,
didn't  even  hear  them leave. I was feeling sorry for Louise and for all
the Forehands, and sorrier for myself. They didn't have the luck, but what
I  have hurt a lot more; I didn't have the courage to see where luck would
take me. Sick societies squeeze adventurers out like grape pips. The grape
pips  don't  have  much  to  say  about it. I suppose it was the same with
Columbus's seamen or the pioneers manhandling their covered wagons through
Comanche  territory-they  must have been scared witless, like me, but they
didn't have much choice. Like me. But, God, how frightened I was..
   I heard voices, a child's and a light, slower laugh that was Klara's. I
sat up.
   "Hello, Rob," she said, standing before me with her hand on the head of
a tiny black girl in corn-row hair. "This is Watty."
   "Hello, Watty."
   My  voice  didn't sound right, even to me. Klara took a closer look and
demanded, "What's the matter?"
   I  couldn't answer that question in one sentence, so I chose one facet.
"Willa Forehand's been posted dead."
   Klara  nodded  without  saying  anything.  Watty piped, "Please, Klara.
Throw  the  ball." Klara tossed it to her, caught it, tossed it again, all
in the Gateway adagio.
   I  said, "Louise wants to go on a danger-bonus launch. I think what she
wants is for me, for us, to go and take her with us."
   "Oh?"
   "Well,  what  about  it? Has Dane said anything to you about one of his
specials?"
   "No!  I haven't seen Dane for-I don't know. Anyway, he shipped out this
morning on a One."
   "He  didn't  have a farewell party!" I protested, surprised. She pursed
her lips.
   The  little  girl called, "Hey, mister! Catch!" When she threw the ball
it  came floating up like a hot-air balloon to a mooring mast, but even so
I  almost  missed it. My mind was on something else. I tossed it back with
concentration.
   After  a  minute  Kiara  said,  "Rob? I'm sorry. I guess I was in a bad
mood."
   "Yeah." My mind was very busy.
   She  said placatingly, "We've been having some hard times, Rob. I don't
want to be raspy with you. I-I brought you something."
   I  looked  around,  and she took my hand and slid something up over it,
onto my arm.
   It  was  a  launch  bracelet, Heechee metal, worth five hundred dollars
anywhere.  I hadn't been able to afford to buy one. I stared at it, trying
to think of what I wanted to say.
   "Rob?"
   "What?"
   There was an edge to her voice. "It's customary to say thank you."
   "It's  customary,"  I  said,  "to give a truthful answer to a question.
Like  not  saying  you  hadn't seen Dane Metchnikov when you were with him
just last night."
   She flared, "You've been spying on me!"
   "You've been lying to me."
   "Rob! You don't own me. Dane's a human being, and a friend."
   |      A NOTE ON METALLURGY
   |
   |      Question.  I  saw  a report that Heechee metal
   |  had  been  analyzed  by  the  National  Bureau  of
   |  Standards-
   |      Professor Hegramet. No, you didn't, Tetsu.
   |      Question. But it was on the PV-
   |      Professor  Hegramet. No. You saw a report that
   |  the  Bureau of Standards had issued a quantitative
   |  assessment of Heechee metal. Not an analysis. Just
   |  a    description:   tensile   strength,   fracture
   |  strength, melting point, all that stuff.
   |      Question.   I'm  not  sure  I  understand  the
   |  difference.
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  No,  You  didn't, Tetsu.
   |  actly  what it does. We don't yet know what it is.
   |  What's  the  most  interesting thing about Heechee
   |  metal? You, Ten?
   |      Question. It glows?
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  It  glows, yes. It emits
   |  light.   Bright  enough  so  that  we  don't  need
   |  anything else to light our rooms, we have to cover
   |  it  over  when we want dark. And it's been glowing
   |  for half a million years at least like that. Where
   |  does  the  energy come from? The Bureau says there
   |  are  some  posturanic elements in it, and probably
   |  they  drive  the radiation; but we don't know what
   |  they  are. There's also something in it that looks
   |  like  an  isotope  of copper. Well, copper doesn't
   |  have  any stable isotopes. Up to now. So what the.
   |  Bureau  says  is  what  the exact frequency of the
   |  blue  light  is, and all the physical measurements
   |  to  eight or nine decimals; but the report doesn't
   |  tell you how to make any.
   "Friend!"  I  barked.  The  last  thing  Metchnikov was to anyone was a
friend.  Just  thinking about Klara with him made my groin crawl. I didn't
like  the sensation, because I couldn't identify it. It wasn't just anger,
wasn't even just jealousy. There was a component that remained obstinately
opaque.  I  said,  knowing it was illogical, hearing myself seem almost to
whine, "I introduced you to him!"
   "That  doesn't  give you ownership! All right," Kiara snarled, "maybe I
went to bed with him a few times. It doesn't change how I feel about you."
   "It changes how I feel about you, Klara."
   She stared incredulously. "You have the nerve to say that? Coming here,
smelling of sex with some cheap floozy?"
   That  one caught me off guard. "There was nothing cheap about it! I was
comforting someone in pain."
   She  laughed.  The  sound  was unpleasant; anger is unbecoming. "Louise
Forehand? She hustled her way up here, did you know that?"
   The little girl was holding the ball and staring at us now. I could see
we  were  frightening  her. I said, trying to tighten my voice to keep the
anger  from spilling out, "Klara, I'm not going to let you make a fool out
of me."
   "Ah,"  she  said  in  inarticulate  disgust, and turned around to go. I
reached out to touch her, and she sobbed and hit me, as hard as she could.
The blow caught me on the shoulder.
   That was a mistake.
   That's  always  a  mistake.  It  isn't  a  matter of what's rational or
justified,  it is a matter of signals. It was the wrong signal to give me.
The reason wolves don't kill each other off is that the smaller and weaker
wolf  always surrenders. It rolls over, bares its throat and puts its paws
in  the  air  to signal that it is beaten. When that happens the winner is
physically  unable  to  attack  anymore.  If  it  were not that way, there
wouldn't  be  any  wolves left. For the same reason men don't usually kill
women,  or not by beating them to death. They can't. However much he wants
to  hit  her, his internal machinery vetoes it. But if the woman makes the
mistake  of  giving  him a different signal by hitting him first-I punched
her four or five times, as hard as I could, on the breast, in the face, in
the belly. She fell to the ground, sobbing. I knelt beside her, lifted her
up with one hand and, in absolutely cold blood, slapped her twice more. It
was  all  happening as if choreographed by God, absolutely inevitably; and
at  the  same  I  could  feel  that  I was breathing as hard as though I'd
climbed  a  mountain  on  a dead run. The blood was thundering in my ears.
Everything I saw was hazed with red.
   I finally heard a distant, thin crying.
   I looked and saw the little girl, Watty, staring at me, her mouth open,
tears  rolling  down  her  wide,  purplish-black cheeks. I started to move
toward her to reassure her. She screamed and ran behind a grape trellis.
   I  turned back toward Klara, who was sitting up, not looking at me, her
hand cupped over her mouth. She took the hand away and stared at something
in it: a tooth.
   I  didn't  say  anything.  I  didn't know what to say, and didn't force
myself to think of anything. I turned and left.
   I  don't  remember  what  I did for the next few hours. I didn't sleep,
although  I  was  physically  exhausted. I sat on a chest of drawers in my
room  for a while. Then I left it again. I remember talking to somebody, I
think  it  was  a  straggler returning to off on the Venus ship, about how
adventurous  and  exciting prospecting was. I remember eating something in
the commissary. And all the time I was thinking: I wanted to kill Klara. I
had been taming all that stored-up fury, and I hadn't even let myself know
it was there until she pulled the trigger.
   I didn't know if she would ever forgive me. I wasn't sure she ought to,
and  I  wasn't even sure that I wanted her to. I couldn't imagine our ever
being lovers again. But what I finally decided I wanted was to apologize.
   Only  she  wasn't  in  her rooms. There was no one there except a plump
young  black woman, slowly sorting out clothes, with a tragic face. When I
asked after Klara she began to cry. "She's gone," the woman sobbed.
   "Gone?"
   "Oh,  she  looked  awful.  Someone must have beaten her up! She brought
Watty  back and said she wouldn't be able to take care of her anymore. She
gave  me  all  her  clothes, but-what am I going to do with Watty when I'm
working?"
   "Gone where?"
   The  woman  lifted  her  head. "Back to Venus. On the ship. She left an
hour ago."
   I  didn't  talk  to  anyone else. Alone in my own bed, somehow I got to
sleep.
   When  I  got  up I gathered together everything I owned: my clothes, my
holodisks,  my  chess  set, my wristwatch. The Heechee bracelet that Kiara
had  given  me.  I  went around and sold them off. I cleaned out my credit
account  and  put  all  the money together: it came to a total of fourteen
hundred  dollars  and change. I took the money up to the casino and put it
all on Number 31 on the roulette wheel.
   The big slow ball drifted into a socket: Green. Zero.
   I  went  down  to mission control and signed for the first One that was
available, and twenty-four hours later I was in space.

   "How do you really feel about Dane, Rob?"
   "How the hell do you think I feel? He seduced my girl."
   "That's  a  strangely old-fashioned way to put it, Rob. And it happened
an awfully long time ago."
   "Sure  it did." Sigfrid strikes me as being unfair. He sets rules, then
he doesn't play by them. I say indignantly, "Cut it out, Sigfrid. All that
happened  a  long  time  ago,  but it isn't being a long time ago, for me,
because  I've  never let it come out. It's still brand new inside my head.
Isn't  that  what  you're  supposed  to  do for me? Let all that old stuff
inside  my head come out so it can dry up and blow away and not cripple me
anymore?"
   "I'd  still  like  to  know why it stays so brand new inside your head,
Rob."
   "Oh,  Christ, Sigfrid!" This is one of Sigirid's stupid times. He can't
handle some complex kinds of input, I guess. When it come right down to it
he's  only  a  machine  and  can't  do anything he isn't programmed to do.
Mostly  he  just  responds  to  key words well, with a little attention to
meaning,  sure.  And to nuance, as as it is expressed by voice tone, or by
what  the  sensors  in  the mat and in the straps tell him about my muscle
activity.
   |      A NOTE ON HEECHEE HABITAT
   |
   |      Question.  Don't  we  even know what a Heechee
   |  table or any old housekeeping thing looks like?
   |      Professor  Hegramet. We don't even know what a
   |  Heechee house looks like. We never found one. Just
   |  tunnels.  They  liked branching shafts, with rooms
   |  opening  out  of  them.  They  liked  big chambers
   |  shaped  like  spindles, tapered at both ends, too.
   |  There's  one  here,  two  on  Venus,  probably the
   |  remains  of one that's half eroded away on Peggy's
   |  World.
   |      Question. I know what the bonus is for finding
   |  intelligent  alien  life, but what's the bonus for
   |  finding a Heechee?
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  Just find one. Then name
   |  your price.
   "If  you  were a person instead of a machine, you'd understand," I tell
him.
   "Perhaps so, Rob."
   To  get him back on the right track I say: "It is true that it happened
a long time ago. I don't see what you're asking beyond that."
   "I'm  asking you to resolve a contradiction I perceive in what you say.
You've  been  saying  that  you  don't mind the fact that your girlfriend,
Klara,  had  sexual relations with other men. Why is it important that she
did with Dane?"
   "Dane  didn't  treat her right!" And, good God, he certainly didn't. He
left her stuck like a fly in amber.
   "Is it because of how he treated Klara, Rob? Or is it something between
Dane and you?"
   "Never! There was never anything between Dane and me!"
   "You did tell me he was bi, Rob. What about  the  flight  you took with
him?"
   "He  had  two  other  men to play with! Not me, boy, no, I say: Not me.
Oh,"  I  say,  trying  to calm my voice enough to mask reflecting the very
mild interest I really felt in this stupid subject, " To be sure, he tried
to put the make on me once or twice. But I told him it wasn't my style."
   "Your  voice,  Rob,"  he  says,  "seems to reflect more anger than your
words account for."
   "Damn  you,  Sigfrid!"  I really am angry now, I admit it. I hardly get
the  words out. "You get me pissed off with your stupid accusations. Sure,
I  let  him  put his arm around me once or twice. That's as far as I went.
Nothing  serious. I was just abusing myself to make the time pass. I liked
him  well  enough.  Big,  good-looking  fellow.  You get lonesome when-now
what?"
   Sigfrid  is  making a sound, sort of like clearing one's throat. I hate
how he interrupts without interrupting. "What did you just say, Rob?"
   "What? When?"
   "When you said there was nothing serious between you."
   "Christ,  I  don't  know what I said. There was nothing serious, that's
all. I was just entertaining myself, to make the time pass."
   "You didn't use the word 'entertaining,' Rob."
   "I didn't? What word did I use?"
   I  reflect,  listening  for  the  echo of my own voice. "I guess I said
'amusing myself.' What about it?"
   "You didn't say 'amusing' either, Rob. What did you say?"
   "I don't know!"
   "You said, 'I was just abusing myself,' Rob."
   My defenses go up. I feel as though I had suddenly discovered I had wet
my  pants,  or that my fly was open. I step outside my body and look at my
own head.
   "What does 'abusing myself' mean to you, Rob?"
   "Say,"  I  say,  laughing,  genuinely  impressed and amused at the same
time, "that's a real Freudian slip, isn't it? You fellows are pretty keen.
My compliments to the programmers."
   Sigfrid  doesn't  respond to my urbane comment. He just lets me stew in
it for a minute.
   "All right," I say. I feel very open and vulnerable, letting nothing at
all  happen, living in that moment as though it were lasting forever, like
Klara stuck in her instant and eternal fall.
   Sigfrid  says  gently,  "Rob.  When  you masturbated, did you ever have
fantasies about Dane?"
   "I hated it," I say.
   He waits.
   "I hated myself for it. I mean, not hated, exactly. More like despised.
Poor goddamn son of a bitch, me, all kinky and awful, beating his meat and
thinking about being screwed by his girl's lover."
   Sigfrid  waits  me  out  for a while. Then he says, "I think you really
want to cry, Rob."
   He's right, but I don't say anything.
   "Would you like to cry?" he invites.
   "I'd love it," I say.
   "Then why don't you go ahead and cry, Rob?"
   "I wish I could," I say. "Unfortunately, I just don't know how."

   I  was  just  turning  over,  making  up my mind to go to sleep, when I
noticed  that  the colors on the Heechee guidance system were breaking up.
It  was the fifty-fifth day of my trip, the twenty seventh since turnover.
The  colors  had  been  shocking  pink  for the whole fifty-five days. Now
whorls of pure white formed, grew, flowed together.
   I  was  arriving!  Wherever  it  was going to turn out to be when I got
there, I was arriving.
   My  little  old  ship-the smelly, hurtful, tedious coffin I had banging
around  in  for  nearly  two  months by myself, talking to myself, playing
games  with  myself,  tired  of myself-was well below lightspeed. I leaned
over  to  look  at  the viewscreen, now related "down" to me because I had
been  decelerating,  and  saw nothing that looked very exciting. Oh, there
was  a star, yes. There lots of stars in a scattering of groupings that in
no  way  looked  familiar;  half  a  dozen  blues  ranging  from bright to
hurt-the-eye.  One  red  one that stood out more for intensity of hue than
luminosity was an angry-looking red coal, not much brighter than Mars from
Earth, but a deeper, uglier red.
   I made myself take an interest.
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel  3-104,  Voyage  031D18. Crew N. Ahoya,
   |  Ta. Zakharcenko, L. Marks.
   |      Transit  time  119  days 4 hours. Position not
   |  identified.  Apparently  outside galactic cluster,
   |  in dust cloud. Identification of external galaxies
   |  doubtful.
   |      Summary.  "We  found  no  trace of any planet,
   |  artifact,  or  landable  asteroid  within scanning
   |  distance.  Nearest  star  approximately 1. 7 l. y.
   |  Conjecture  whatever  was  there  has  since  been
   |  destroyed.    Life-support    systems   began   to
   |  malfunction on return trip and Larry Marks died."
   That  was  not  really  easy.  After  two  months of rejecting close to
everything  around  me  because it was boring or threatening, it was tough
for  me  to switch over to a welcoming, vulnerable mode. I switched on the
spherical  scan  and  peered  out as the ship began to rotate its scanning
pattern,  slicing orange-peel strips of sky to capture for the cameras and
analyzers.
   And almost at once I got a huge, bright, nearby signal. Fifty-five days
of  boredom  and exhaustion went right out of my mind. There was something
either  very  big  or  very close. I forgot about being sleepy. I crouched
over  the viewscreen, holding onto it with hands and knees, and then I saw
it:  a squared-off object marching into the screen. Glowing all over. Pure
Heechee  metal.  It  was  irregularly  slab-sided,  with  rounded  pimples
studding it on the flat sides.
   And the adrenalin began to flow, and visions of sugarplums danced in my
head.  I  watched it out of sight, and then hauled myself over to the scan
analyzer,  waiting  to see what would come out. There was no question that
it  was  good, the only question was how good. Maybe extraordinarily good!
Maybe  a whole Peggy's World all my own!-with a royalty in the millions of
dollars  every  year  for  the rest of my life! Maybe only a vacant shell.
Maybe.  The  squared-off  shape  suggested  it  was-maybe  that wildest of
dreams,  a  whole big Heechee ship that I could enter into and fly around;
where  I  chose,  big enough to carry a thousand people and a lion tons of
cargo!  All those dreams were possible; and even if they all failed, if it
was  just an abandoned shell, if all that it held was one thing inside it,
one  little  doodad,  one  gadget,  one  whosis that nobody had ever found
before that could be taken apart, reproduced and made to work on Earth..
   I  stumbled  and raked my knuckles against the spiral gaget now glowing
soft gold. I sucked the blood off them and realized the ship was moving.
   It  shouldn't have been moving! It wasn't programmed to do that. It was
meant  to  hang in whatever orbit it was programmed to find, and just stay
there until I looked around and made my decisions.
   I  stared  around, confused and baffled. The glowing slab was firmly in
the  middle  of  the viewscreen now, and it stayed there; ship had stopped
its  automatic  spherical scan. Belatedly I heard the distant high yell of
the  lander motors. They were what was moving me; my ship was targeted for
that slab.
   And a green light was glowing over the pilot's seat.
   That  was  wrong!  The  green  light  was installed on Gateway by human
beings.  It  had  nothing  to  do  with  the Heechee; it was the plain old
people's  radio  circuit, announcing that someone was calling me. Who? Who
could be anywhere near my brand-new discovery?
   I thumbed on the TBS circuit and shouted, "Hello?"
   There  was  an  answer. I didn't understand it; it seemed to be in some
foreign  language,  perhaps  Chinese.  But  it was human, all right. "Talk
English!" I yelled. "Who the hell are you?"
   Pause. Then another voice. "Who are you?"
   "My name is Rob Broadhead," I snarled.
   "Broadhead?"  Confused  mumbling  of  a  couple  of  voices.  Then  the
English-speaking  voice  again:  "We don't have any record of a prospector
named Broadhead. Are you from Aphrodite?"
   "What's Aphrodite?"
   "Oh,  Christ!  Who  are you? Listen, this is Gateway Two control and we
don't have time to screw around. Identify yourself!"
   Gateway Two!
   I  snapped  off  the radio and lay back, watching the slab grow larger,
ignoring  the demand of the green light. Gateway Two? How ridiculous! If I
had  wanted  to  go  to  Gateway Two I would have signed up in the regular
course  and  accepted  the penalty of paying royalties on anything I might
find.  I  would have flown out secure as any tourist, on a course that had
been tested a hundred times. I hadn't done that. I had picked a setting no
one  else  had  ever  used and taken my risks. And I had felt every one of
them, scared out of my brain for fifty-five bad days.
   It wasn't fair!
   I  lost my head. I lunged toward the Heechee course director and shoved
the wheels around at random.
   It was a failure I couldn't accept. I was braced to find nothing. I was
not braced to find I had done something easy, for no reward at all.
   But  what  I  produced  was  a bigger failure still. There was a bright
yellow flash from the course board, and then all the colors went black.
   The thin scream from the lander motors stopped.
   The  feeling of motion was gone. The ship was dead. Nothing was moving.
Nothing  worked  in  the  Heechee  complex;  nothing, not even the cooling
system.
   By  the time Gateway Two sent a ship out to haul me in I delirious with
heatstroke, in an ambient temperature of 75. 0 C.
   Gateway  was  hot  and  dank. Gateway Two was cold enough that I had to
borrow  jacket,  gloves,  and  heavy underwear. Gateway stank of sweat and
sewers. Gateway Two tasted of rusty steel. Gateway was bright and loud and
full  of  people. On Gateway Two there was almost no sound, and only seven
human  beings,  counting myself, to make any. The Heechee had left Gateway
Two  not  quite  completed.  Some of the tunnels ended in bare rock, there
were  only  a  few  dozen  of  them.  no  one  had  got around to planting
vegetation  yet,  and all the air there was came from chemical processors.
The  partial  pressure  of O2 was under 150 millibars; and the rest of the
atmosphere  was  a  nitrogen-helium  mix, much more than half earth-normal
pressure  altogether, that made the voices highpitched and left me gasping
for the first few hours.
   The  man  who  helped  me  out  of my lander and bundled me against the
sudden cold was a dark, immense Martian-Japanese named Norio Ituno. He put
me in his own bed, filled me with hot liquids and let me rest for an hour.
I  dozed,  and  when  I  woke  he  was  sitting  there, looking at me with
amusement  and  respect.  The  respect  was  for  someone  who had slain a
five-hundred  million-dollar  ship.  The  amusement  was  that I was idiot
enough to do it.
   "I guess I'm in trouble," I said.
   "I  would say so, yes," he agreed. "The ship is totally dead. Never saw
anything like it before."
   "I didn't know a Heechee ship could go dead like that."
   He  shrugged.  "You  did  something  original,  Broadhead.  How are you
feeling?"  I  sat  up to answer him, and he nodded. "I'm pretty busy right
now.  I'm  going  to  have  to  let  you take can yourself for a couple of
hours-if you can?-fine. Then we'll have a party for you."
   "Party!" It was the farthest thing from my mind. "For who?"
   "We  don't  meet  someone  like  you  every day, Broadhead," said Ituno
admiringly, and left me to my thoughts.
   I didn't like my thoughts very much, and after a while I got up, put on
the gloves, buttoned up the jacket, and started exploring.
   |      Dear Voice of Gateway:
   |
   |      Are  you  a reasonable and open-minded person?
   |  Then  prove  it by reading this letter all the way
   |  through  to  the  end  before  making up your mind
   |  about  what  it  says. There are thirteen occupied
   |  levels  in  Gateway. There are thirteen residences
   |  in  each  of thirteen (count them yourself) of the
   |  housing  halls.  Do  you think this letter is just
   |  silly  superstition? Then look at the evidence for
   |  yourself!  Launches 83-20, 84-1 and 84-10 (what do
   |  the  digits  add up to?) were all declared overdue
   |  in  List  86-13! Gateway Corporation, wake up! Let
   |  the  skeptics  and bigots jeer. Human lives depend
   |  on  your willingness to risk a little ridicule. It
   |  would cost nothing to omit the Danger Numbers from
   |  all programs-except courage!
   |      Gloyner, 88-331
   It didn't take long; there wasn't much there. I heard sounds of a party
from the lower levels, but the echoes traveled at queer as along the empty
corridors,  and I saw no one. Gateway Two didn't have a tourist trade, and
so there wasn't any nightclub or casino or restaurant that I could find...
not  even  a  latrine.  After  a  little while that question began to seem
urgent.  I reasoned that Ituno would have to have something like that near
his  room,  and  tried to retrace my steps to there, but that didn't work,
either.  There  were  cubicles  along some of the corridors, but they were
unfinished.  no  one  lived  there,  and  no  one  had troubled to install
plumbing.
   It was not one of my better days.
   When  I  finally  found  a toilet I puzzled over it for ten minutes and
would  guiltily  have left it impolitely soiled if I had not heard a sound
outside the cubicle. A plump little woman was standing there, waiting.
   "I don't know how to flush it," I apologized.
   She  looked  me  up and down. "You're Broadhead," she stated, and then:
"Why don't you go to Aphrodite?"
   "What's  Aphrodite-no,  wait. First, how do you flush this thing? Then,
what's Aphrodite?"
   She pointed to a button on the edge of the door; I had thought it was a
light  switch.  When  I  touched  it the whole bottom of the seamless bowl
began  to  glow  and in ten seconds there was nothing inside but ash, then
nothing at all.
   "Wait  for  me,"  she commanded, disappearing inside. When she came out
she said, "Aphrodite's where the money is, Broadhead. You're going to need
it."
   I let her take my arm and pull me along. Aphrodite, I began understand,
was  a  planet. A new one, that a ship from Gateway Two had opened up less
than  forty  days  earlier, and a big find. "You'd have to pay royalty, of
course,"  she said. "And so far haven't found anything big, just the usual
Heechee  debris.  But  there's  thousands  of square miles to explore, and
it'll  be  months  before the first batch of prospectors starts coming out
from  Gateway.  We  only  sent  the word back forty days ago. Have you any
hot-planet experience?"
   "Hot-planet experience?"
   "I  mean," she explained, pulling me down a dropshaft and closing up to
me, "have you ever explored a planet that's hot?"
   |  We sniff for your scent in the gas of Orion,
   |  We dig for your den with the dogs of Procyon,
   |  From Baltimore, Buffalo, Bonn, and Benares
   |  We seek you round Algol, Arcturus, Antares.
   |  We'll find you some day.
   |  Little lost Heechee, we're on our way!
   "No.  As  a  matter  of  fact, I haven't had any experience at all that
counts for anything. One trip. Empty. I didn't even land."
   "Pity,"  she  said. "Still, there's not that much to learn. Do you know
what  Venus  is like? Aphrodite's just a little bit worse. The primary's a
flare  star,  and you don't want to be caught in the open. But the Heechee
digs are all underground. If you find one, you're in."
   "What are the chances of finding one?" I asked.
   "Well,"  she  said  thoughtfully,  pulling  me off the cable and down a
tunnel,  "not  all  that  good,  maybe. After all, you're out in open when
you're  prospecting.  On Venus they use armored bodies and they zap around
anywhere  they  want to go, no trouble. Well, maybe a little trouble," she
conceded.  "But  they  don't lose very many prospectors anymore. Maybe one
percent."
   "What percent do you lose on Aphrodite?"
   "More  than  that. Yes, I grant you, it's higher than that. You have to
use  the  lander  from  your  ship,  and  of course it's not mobile on the
surface  of  a  planet. Especially a planet with a face like molten sulfur
and winds like hurricanes-when the weather's mild."
   "It sounds charming," I said. "Why aren't you out there now?"
   "Me?  I'm  an  out-pilot.  I'm going back to Gateway in about ten days,
soon as I get a cargo loaded, or somebody who comes in wants a ride back."
   "I want a ride back right now."
   "Oh,  cripes, Broadhead! Don't you know what kind of trouble you're in?
You broke regulations by messing with the control board. They'll throw the
book at you."
   I  thought  it  over  carefully. Then I said, "Thanks, but I think I'll
take my chances."
   "Don't  you  understand?  Aphrodite  has guaranteed Heeche remains. You
could take a hundred trips without finding anything like this."
   "Sweetie,"  I  said, "I couldn't take a hundred trips for anything, not
now  and not ever. I don't know if I can take one. I think I have the guts
to get back to Gateway. Beyond that, I don't know."
   I was on Gateway Two, all together, thirteen days. Hester Bergowiz, the
out-pilot, kept trying to talk me into going to Aphrodite, I guess because
she  didn't  want  me taking up valuable cargo space on her return flight.
The others didn't care. They only thought I was crazy. I was a problem for
Ituno,  who  was  loosely  in  charge  of  keeping things straight on Two.
Technically I was an illegal entrant, without a dime's worth of per capita
paid and with nothing to pay it with. He would have been within his rights
to  toss  me  out into space without a suit. He solved it by putting me to
work loading low-priority cargo into Hester's Five, mostly prayer fans and
samples  for  analysis  from  Aphrodite.  That  took two days, and then he
designated  me  chief gofer for the three people who were rebuilding suits
for  the  next  batch  of  explorers of Aphrodite. They had to use Heechee
torches to soften the metal enough to bend it onto the Suits, and I wasn't
trusted with any of that. It takes two years to train a person to handle a
Heechee torch in close quarters. But I was allowed to muscle the suits and
sheets  of Heechee metal into position for them, to fetch tools, to go for
coffee...  and  to put the suits on when they were finished, and exit into
space to make sure they didn't leak.
   None of them leaked.
   On  the twelfth day, two Fives came in from Gateway, loaded with happy,
eager  prospectors  bringing  all  the  wrong  equipment.  The  word about
Aphrodite  had  not  had  time to get to Gateway and back, so the new fish
didn't  know what goodies were in store. Just by accident, one of them was
a  young  girl  on  a  science  mission,  a  former  student  of Professor
Hegramet's who was supposed to make anthropometric studies of Gateway Two.
On  his own authority Norio Ituno reassigned her to Aphrodite, and decreed
a  combination  welcome  and  farewell  party.  The  ten  newcomers  and I
outnumbered  our  hosts;  but  what they lacked in numbers they made up in
drinking,  and  it  was  a good party. I found myself a celebrity. The new
fish  couldn't  get  over  the  fact  that  I had slain a Heechee ship and
survived.
   I was almost sorry to leave... not counting being scared.
   Ituno  splashed  three  fingers of rice whiskey into a glass for me and
offered  me  a toast. "Sorry to see you go, Broadhead," he said. "Sure you
won't  change  your  mind?  We've got more armored ships and suits than we
have  prospectors  right  now,  but  I don't know how long that's going to
last. If you change your mind after you get back-"
   "I'm not going to change my mind," I said.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      SHADE-GROWN  BROADLEAF hand tended and rolled.
   |  $2 roach~ 87-307.
   |
   |      PRESENT  WHEREABOUTS  Agosto  T. Agnelli. Call
   |  Corporation security for Interpol. Reward.
   |
   |      STORIES,   POEMS  published.  Perfect  way  to
   |  preserve   memories   for   your  children.  Sur-.
   |  prisingly low cost. Publishers' rep, 87-349.
   |
   |      ANYBODY   FROM   Pittsburgh  or  Paducah?  I'm
   |  homesick. 88-226.
   "Banzai,"  he  said,  and  drank. "Listen, do you know an old guy named
Bakin?"
   "Shicky? Sure. My neighbor."
   "Give  him my regards," he said, pouring another drink for the purpose.
"He's  a  great guy, but he reminds me of you. I was with him when he lost
his  legs:  got  caught  in  the lander when we had to jettison. Damn near
died.  By the time we got him to Gateway he was all swelled up and smelled
like hell; we had to take the legs off, two days out. I did it myself."
   "He's  a great person, all right," I said absently, finishing the drink
and holding the glass out for more. "Hey. What do you mean, he reminds you
of me?"
   "Can't  make  up his mind, Broadhead. He's got a stake that's enough to
put  him on Full Medical, and he can't make up his mind to spend it. If he
spends  it  he  can  have his legs back and go out again. But then he'd be
broke if he didn't score. So he just stays on, a cripple."
   I  put  the  glass  down.  I  didn't  want any more to drink. "So long,
Ituno," I said. "I'm going to bed."
   I  spent  most  of the trip back writing letters to Klara that I didn't
know if I would ever mail. There wasn't much else to do. Hester turned out
to  be  surprisingly  sexual, for a small plump lady of a certain age. But
there's  a  limit to how long that is entertaining, and with all the cargo
we  had jammed in the ship, there wasn't room for much else. The days were
all the same: sex, letter writing, sleeping... and worrying.
   Worrying  about  why Shicky Bakin wanted to stay a cripple; which was a
way of worrying, in a way I could face, about why I did.

   Sigfrid says, "You sound tired, Rob."
   Well,  that was understandable enough. I had gone off to Hawaii for the
weekend. Some of my money was in tourism there, so was all tax deductible.
It  was  a  lovely  couple  of  days  on  the  Big Island, with a two-hour
stockholders'  meeting  in  the  morning,  at afternoons with one of those
beautiful  Island girls on the beach sailing in glass-bottomed catamarans,
watching  the  big mantas glide underneath, begging for crumbs. But coming
back, you fight time zones all the way, and I was exhausted.
   Only  that  is  not the sort of thing that Sigfrid really wants to hear
about.  He  doesn't  care if you're physically exhausted. He doest care if
you've got a broken leg; he only wants to know if you dream about screwing
your mother.
   I  say  that.  I say, "I'm tired, all right, Sigfrid, but why don't you
stop making small talk? Get right into my Oedipal feelings about Ma."
   "Did you have any, Robby?"
   "Doesn't everybody?"
   "Do you want to talk about them, Robby?"
   "Not particularly."
   He  waits,  and I wait, too. Sigfrid has been being cute again, and now
his  room  is  fixed  up  like  a boy's room from forty years ago. Crossed
Ping-Pong  paddles hologrammed on the wall. A fake window with a fake view
of  the  Montana  Rockies  in a snowstorm. A hologrammed cassette shelf of
boys'  stories  on tape, Tom Sawyer and Lost Race of Mars and-I can't read
the rest of the titles. It is all very homey, but not in the least like my
own  room  as  a boy, which was tiny, narrow, and almost filled by the old
sofa I slept on.
   "Do you know what you want to talk about, Rob?" Sigfrid probes gently.
   "You  bet."  Then I reconsider. "Well, no. I'm not sure." Actually I do
know.  Something had hit me on the way back from Hawaii, very hard. It's a
five-hour  flight.  Half  the  time  I had spent drenched in tears. It was
funny.  There was this lovely hapi-haole girl flying east in the seat next
to  me,  and  I  had decided right away to get to know her better. And the
stewardess  was  the  same  one  I'd  had  before, and she, I already knew
better.
   So  there I was, sitting at the very back of the first-class section of
the  SST,  taking  drinks  from  the  stewardess,  chatting with my pretty
hapi-haole.  And-every time the girl was drowsing, or in the ladies' room,
and  the stewardess was looking the other way-racked with silent, immense,
tearful sobs.
   And  then  one  of them would look my way again and I would be smiling,
alert, and on the make.
   "Do you want to just say what you're feeling at this second, Rob?"
   "I would in a minute, Sigirid, if I knew what it was."
   "Don't you know, really? Can't you remember what was in your head while
you weren't talking, just now?"
   "Sure I can!" I hesitate, then I say, "Oh, hell, Sigfrid, I guess I was
just  waiting  to  be coaxed. I had an insight the other day, and it hurt.
Oh, wow, you wouldn't believe how it hurt. I was crying like a baby."
   "What was the insight, Robby?"
   "I'm  trying  to  tell  you.  It was about-well, it was partly about my
mother.  But  it  was  also  about, well, you know, Dane Metchnikov. I had
these... I had-"
   "I  think you're trying to say something about the fantasies you had of
having anal sex with Dane Metchnikov, Rob. Is that right?"
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel  A3-77, Voyage 036D51. Crew T. Parreno,
   |  N. Ahoya, E. Nimkin.
   |      Transit   time   5  days  14  hours.  Position
   |  vicinity Alpha Centauri A.
   |      Summary.  "The planet was quite Earth-like and
   |  heavily vegetated. The color of the vegetation was
   |  predominantly  yellow.  The atmosphere matched the
   |  Heechee  mix  closely. It is a warm planet with no
   |  polar  ice caps and a temperature range similar to
   |  Earth  tropics  at  the  equator,  Earth temperate
   |  extending  almost  to  the  poles.  We detected no
   |  animal life or signatures (methane, etc.) thereof.
   |  Some  of  the  vegetation  predates at a very slow
   |  pace,   advancing   by  uprooting  portions  of  a
   |  vinelike  structure, curling around and rerooting.
   |  Maximum  velocity  measured  was  approximately  2
   |  kilometers  per  hour.  no  artifacts. Parreno and
   |  Nimkin   landed   and  returned  with  samples  of
   |  vegetation,   but  died  of  a  toxicodendron-like
   |  reaction. Great blisters formed over their bodies.
   |  Then  they  developed  pain,  itching and apparent
   |  suffocation,  probably  due to fluids accumulating
   |  in  the  lung.  I  did  not  bring them aboard the
   |  vessel.  I  did not open the lander, or dock it to
   |  the vessel. I recorded personal messages for both,
   |  then  jettisoned  the  lander and returned without
   |  it."
   |      Corporation assessment: no charge made against
   |  N. Ahoya in view of past record.
   "Yeah.  You  remember good, Sigfrid. When I was crying, it was about my
mother. Partly..."
   "You told me that, Rob."
   "Right."  And  I close up. Sigfrid waits. I wait, too. I suppose I want
to be coaxed some more, and after a while Sigfrid obliges me:
   "Let's see if I can help you, Rob," he says. "What do crying about your
mother,  and your fantasies about anal sex with Dane, have to do with each
other?"
   I  feel  something happening inside of me. It feels as though the soft,
wet  inside  of  my chest is starting to bubble into my throat. I can tell
that  when my voice comes out, it is going to be tremulous and desperately
forlorn  if  I  don't  control it. So I try to control it, although I know
perfectly  well  that  I have no secrets of this sort from Sigfrid; he can
read his sensors and know what is going on inside me from the tremble of a
triceps or the dampness of a palm.
   But  I  make  the  effort  anyway. In the tones of a biology instructor
explaining  a  prepared  frog  I say: "See, Sigfrid, my mother loved me. I
knew  it.  You know it. It was a logical demonstration; she had no choice.
And  Freud  said  once  that  no  boy  who  is certain he was his mother's
favorite ever grows up to be neurotic. Only-"
   "Please,   Robbie,   that   isn't   quite  right,  and  besides  you're
intellectualizing.  You  know  you  really  don't want to put in all these
preambles. You're stalling, aren't you?"
   Other  times  I  would tear the circuits out of his chips for that, but
this time he has my mood gauged correctly. "All right. But I did know that
my  mother  loved  me. She couldn't help it! I was her only son. My father
was  dead-don't  clear  your  throat, Sigfrid, I'm getting to it. It was a
logical  necessity that she loved me, and I understood it that way with no
doubt at all in my mind, but she never said so. Never once."
   "You  mean  that never, in your whole life, did she say to you, 'I love
you, son?'"
   "No!" I scream. Then I get control again. "Or not directly, no. I mean,
once  when  I  was  like eighteen years old and going to sleep in the next
room,  I  heard  her to say to one of her friends-girlfriends, I mean-that
she  really  thought  I was a tremendous kid. She was proud of me. I don't
remember what I'd done, something, won a prize or got a job, but she right
that minute was proud of me and loved me, and said so.... But not to me."
   "Please go on, Rob," Sigfrid says after a moment.
   "I  am going on! Give me a minute. It hurts; I guess it's what you call
primal pain."
   "Please don't diagnose yourself, Rob. Just say it. Let it come out."
   "Oh, shit."
   I reach for a cigarette and then stop the motion. That's usually a good
thing  to  do  when  things get tight with Sigfrid, because it will almost
always  distract him into an argument about whether I am trying to relieve
tension  instead of dealing with it; but this time I am too disgusted with
myself,  with  Sigfrid, even with my mother. I want to get it over with. I
say,  "Look,  Sigfrid,  here's  how it was. I loved my mother a lot, and I
know-knew!-she loved me. I knew she wasn't very good at showing it."
   I  suddenly  realize  I  have  a  cigarette in my hands, and rolling it
around  without  lighting  it  and,  wondrous  to say, Sigfrid hasn't even
commented  on  it. I plunge right on: "She didn't say the words to me. Not
only  that.  It's  funny, Sigfrid, but, you know I can't remember her ever
touching  me. I mean, not really. She would kiss me good night, sometimes.
On  the  top  of the head. And I remember she told me stories. And she was
always there when needed her. But-"
   I  have  to  stop  for a moment, to get control of my voice again, so I
inhale deeply and evenly through my nose, concentrating breath flow.
   "But  you  see, Sigfrid," I say, rehearsing the words ahead of time and
pleased  with  the  clarity  and  balance  with which I deliver them, "she
didn't  touch  me much. Except for one way. She was very good to me when I
was  sick.  I  was  sick  a lot. Everybody around the food mines has runny
noses,  skin  infections-you know. She got me everything I needed. She was
there,  God  knows  how,  holding down a job and taking care of me, all at
once. And when I was sick she..."
   After a moment Sigfrid says, "Go on, Robbie. Say it."
   I try, but I am still stuck, and he says:
   "Just  say  it  the fastest way you can. Get it out. Don't worry if you
understand, or if it makes sense. Just get rid of the words."
   "Well,  she  would  take my temperature," I explain. "You know, stick a
thermometer  into  me.  And  she'd  hold me for, you know, whatever it is,
three minutes or so. And then she'd take the thermometer out and read it."
   I  am  right on the verge of bawling. I'm willing to let it happen, but
first  I  want  to follow this thing through; it is almost a sexual thing,
like  when  you  are  getting right up to the moment of decision with some
person  and you don't think you really want to let her be that much a part
of  you but you go ahead anyhow. I save up voice control, measuring it out
so that I won't run out before I finish. Sigfrid doesn't say anything, and
after a moment I manage the words:
   "You  see  how  it is, Sigfrid? It's funny. All my life now-what is it,
maybe  forty  years  since  then?  And I still have this crazy notion that
being loved has something to do with having things stuck up my ass."

   There  had  been  a lot of changes on Gateway while I was Out. The head
tax  had  been  raised.  The  Corporation wanted to get rid of some of the
extra  hangers-on,  like Shicky and me; bad news meant that my prepaid per
capita  wasn't good for two or three weeks, it was only good for ten days.
They  had  imported  a  bunch  of  double-domes  from  Earth, astronomers,
xenotechs,  mathmaticians,  even old Professor Hegramet was up from Earth,
bruised from the lift-off deltas but hopping spryly around the tunnels.
   One  thing  that  hadn't  changed  was  the Evaluation Board, and I was
impaled  on  the  hot  seat in front of it, squirming while my friend Emma
told  me what a fool I was. Mr. Hsien was actually doing the telling, Emma
only  translated.  But  she  loved her voice: "I warned you you'd fuck up,
Broadhead.  You  should  have  listened  to  me.  Why  did  you change the
setting?"
   "I  told  you.  When I found out I was at Gateway Two I couldn't handle
it. I wanted to go somewhere else."
   "Extraordinarily stupid of you, Broadhead."
   I glanced at Hsien. He had hung himself up on the wall by his rolled-up
collar  and  was  hanging there, beaming benignly, hands folded. "Emma," I
said, "do whatever you want to do, but get off my back."
   She  said  sunnily,  "I  am doing what I want to do, Broadhead, because
it's  what I have to do. It's my job. You knew it was against the rules to
change the settings."
   "What rules? It was my ass that was on the line."
   "The  rules  that  say  you shouldn't destroy a ship," she explained. I
didn't  answer,  and  she chirped some sort of a translation to Hsien, who
listened  gravely,  pursed his lips and then delivered two neat paragraphs
in Mandarin. You could hear the punctuation.
   "Mr. Hsien says," said Emma, "that you are a very irresponsible person.
You  have  killed  an  irreplaceable  piece  of equipment. It was not your
property.  It  belonged  to  the  whole  human race." He lilted a few more
sentences, and she finished: "We cannot make a final determination of your
liability  until  we  have  further information about the condition of the
ship  you  damaged.  According  to Mr. Ituno he will have a complete check
made  of  the  ship  at the first opportunity. There were two xenotechs in
transit  for  the  new  planet, Aphrodite, at the time of his report. They
will  have  reached  Gateway Two by now, and we can expect their findings,
probably, with the next out-pilot. Then we will call you again."
   She  paused,  looking  at  me,  and  I  took it the interview was over.
"Thanks  a lot," I said, and pushed myself toward the door. She let me get
all the way to it before she said:
   "One more thing. Mr. Ituno's report mentions that you worked on loading
and  fabricating suits on Gateway Two. He authorizes a per diem payment to
you  amounting  to,  let  me  see,  twenty-five  hundred dollars. And your
out-captain, Hester Bergowiz, has authorized payment of one percent of her
bonus  to  you  for services during the return flight; so your account has
been credited accordingly."
   "I didn't have a contract with her," I said, surprised.
   "No.  But she feels you should have a share. A small share, to be sure.
Altogether-"  she  looked  under a paper, "it comes to twenty-five hundred
plus  fifty-five  hundred-eight  thousand  dollars  your  account has been
credited with."
   Eight  thousand  dollars! I headed for a dropshaft, grabbed an up-cable
and  pondered. It was not enough to make any real difference. It certainly
would not be enough to pay the damages they would soak me for messing up a
ship.  There  wasn't  enough  money  in  the universe to pay that, if they
wanted to charge me full replacement cost; there was no way to replace it.
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel 1-103, Voyage 022D18. Crew G. Herron.
   |      Transit time out 107 days 5 hours.
   |      Transit time return 103 days 15 hours.
   |      Extract  from log. "At 84 days 6 hours out the
   |  Q  instrument  began to glow and there was unusual
   |  activity in the control lights. At the same time I
   |  felt  a  change  in  the  direction of thrust. For
   |  about one hour there were continuing changes, then
   |  the  Q  light  went  out  and  things went back to
   |  normal."
   |      Conjecture:   Course   change  to  avoid  some
   |  transient  hazard,  perhaps  a star or other body?
   |  Recommend computer search of trip logs for similar
   |  events.
   On the other hand, it was eight thousand dollars more than I'd had.
   I  celebrated  by  buying  myself a drink at the Blue Hell. While I was
drinking  it,  I  thought about my options. The more I thought about them,
the more they dwindled away.
   They  would find me culpable, no doubt about that, and the least they'd
assess  me  would  be  somewhere  in the hundreds of thousands of dollars.
Well,  I  didn't have it. It might be a lot more, but that didn't make any
difference;  once  they  take away all you have, there isn't anything left
anyway.
   So  when you came right down to it, my eight thousand dollars was fairy
gold.  It  could  vanish  with  the morning dew. As soon as the xenotech's
report  came  in from Gateway Two the Board would reconvene and that would
be the end of that.
   So  there was no particular reason to stretch my money. I might as well
spend it.
   There  was no reason, either, to think about getting back my old job as
an  ivy-planter-even  assuming  I could get it, with Shicky fired from his
job  as  straw-boss.  The minute they made a judgment against me my credit
balance  would  disappear. So would my prepaid per-capita payment. I would
be subject to immediate defenestration.
   If there happened to be an Earth-bound ship in port at the time I could
just  get on board, and sooner or later I would be back in Wyoming looking
for  my  old  job at the food mines. If there wasn't a ship, then I was in
trouble.  I  might  be  able  to  talk  the American cruiser, or maybe the
Brazilian  one if Francy Hereira was in a position to pull strings for me,
into taking me aboard for a while until a ship showed up. Or I might not.
   Considered carefully, the chances were not very hopeful.
   The  very  best  thing I could do would be to act before the Board did,
and there there were two choices.
   I  could  take  the next ship in port back to Earth and the food mines,
without waiting for the Board's decision.
   Or I could ship out again.
   They  were two lovely choices. One of them meant giving up every chance
of a decent life forever... and the other one scared me out of my mind.
   |      A NOTE ON BLACK HOLES
   |
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Now,  if you start with a star
   |  bigger  than three solar masses, and it collapses,
   |  it doesn't just turn into a neutron star. It keeps
   |  on  going.  It  gets  so  dense  that  the  escape
   |  velocity  exceeds  thirty  million  centimeters  a
   |  second... which is... ?
   |      Question. Uh. The speed of light?
   |      Dr.  Asmemion.  Right  on,  Gallina.  So light
   |  can't  escape.  So  it's black. So that's why it's
   |  called a black hole-only, if you get close enough,
   |  inside  what's  called  the  ergosphere,  it isn't
   |  black. You probably could see something.
   |      Question. What would it look like?
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Beats  the ass off me, Jer. If
   |  anybody  ever  goes  and sees one, he'll come back
   |  and tell us if he can. Only he probably can't. You
   |  could  maybe  get that close in, get your readings
   |  and  come back-and collect, Jesus, I don't know, a
   |  million dollars anyway. If you could get into your
   |  lander,  see,  and  kick the main mass of the ship
   |  away, backward, slowing it down, you might be able
   |  to  give  yourself  enough  extra  velocity to get
   |  away.  Not  easily. But maybe, if things were just
   |  right.  But then where would you go? You can't get
   |  home  in  a  lander.  And  doing  it the other way
   |  wouldn't work, there isn't enough mass in a lander
   |  to get you free. I see old Bob isn't enjoying this
   |  discussion,  so  let's  move on to planetary types
   |  and dust clouds.
   Gateway  was  like  a  gentlemen's  club  in  which you never knew what
members  were  in  town.  Louise Forehand was gone; her husband, Sess, was
patiently holding the fort, waiting for her or their remaining daughter to
return  before  shipping out again himself. He helped me move back into my
room,  which  had been temporarily occupied by three Hungarian women until
they  had  shipped out together in a Three. Moving took no great effort; I
didn't  own  anything  anymore,  except  what  I  had  just  bought in the
commissary.
   The  only  permanent feature was Shicky Bakin, unfailingly friendly and
always  there. I asked him if he had heard from Klara. He had not. "Go out
again, Rob," he urged. "it is the only thing to do."
   "Yeah." I did not want to argue it; he was incontestably right. Maybe I
would....  I  said,  "I  wish I weren't a coward, Shicky, but I am. I just
don't  know  how I can make myself get into a ship again. I don't have the
courage to face a hundred days of fearing death every minute."
   He  chuckled,  and  hopped off the chest of drawers to pat my shoulder.
"You  don't  need  so  much courage," he said, flapping back to the chest.
"You  only  need courage for one day: just to get in the ship and go. Then
you  don't  have to have courage anymore, because you don't anymore have a
choice."
   "I think I could have done it," I said, "if Metchnikov's theories about
the color codes had been right. But some of the 'safe' ones are dead."
   "It  was  only  a  statistical  matter, Rob. It is true that there is a
better safety record now, and a better success record, too. Only marginal,
yes. But better."
   "The ones that died are just as dead," I said. "Still-perhaps I'll talk
to Dane again."
   Shicky looked surprised. "He's out."
   "When?"
   "Around when you left. I thought you knew."
   I had forgotten. "Wonder if he found the soft touch he was looking for."
   Shicky  scratched  his chin with his shoulder, keeping himself balanced
with lazy wing strokes. Then he hopped off the chest and fluttered over to
the  piezophone.  "Let's see," he said, punched buttons. The locator board
jumped  into  view  on  the  screen.  "Launch  88-173,"  he  read. "Bonus,
$150,000. That's not much, is it?"
   "I thought he was going for something bigger."
   "Well," said Shicky, reading, "he didn't get it. Says he came back last
night."
   Since Metchnikov had halfway promised to share his apt with me, it made
sense  for  me  to  talk to him; but I wasn't so sensible. I got as far as
checking out that he had returned with a find and with nothing to show for
his efforts but the bonus; didn't go to see him.
   I didn't do much of anything, in fact. I hung around.
   Gateway  is  not the most amenity-filled place to live in the universe,
but  I  found  things  to  do.  It  beat the food mines. Each passing hour
brought me an hour closer to the time when the tech's report would arrive,
but I managed not to think about that most of the time. I nursed drinks in
the  Blue  Hell,  making  friends  with the tourists, the visiting cruiser
crews,  the  returnees,  the  fish that kept coming up from the sweltering
planets, looking I guess, for another Klara. None showed up.
   I read over the letters I had written her on the trip back from Gateway
Two,  and  then  I  tore  them  up.  Instead I wrote a silly short note to
apologize  and  tell her that I loved her and took it down to radio it off
to  her  on  Venus.  But she wasn't there. I'd forgotten how long the slow
Hohmann orbits took. The flight office identified the ship she had left on
easily  enough;  it  was a right-angle orbiter, which spent its whole life
changing  delta  to  rendezvous with plane-of-the-ecliptic flights between
the planets. According to the records, her ship had made a rendezvous with
a  Mars-bound  freighter,  and  then  a  Venus-bound high-G liner; she had
presumably  transferred to one of them, but didn't know which, and neither
one of them would reach its destination for a month or more yet.
   I sent duplicate copies to each ship, but there wasn't any answer.
   The  closest  I  came  to  a new girlfriend was a Gunner Third from the
Brazilian  cruiser.  Francy Hereira brought her around. "This is Susie, my
cousin,"  he  said, introducing us; and then, privately, later,"You should
know,  Rob,  that  I  do  not have family feelings about cousins." All the
crews  got  shore leave on Gateway from time to time, and while, as I have
said, Gateway wasn't Waikiki or Cannes, it beat the bare bones of a combat
vessel.  Susie  Hereira  was very young. She said she was nineteen and was
supposed  to be at least seventeen to be in the Brazilian Navy at all, but
she  didn't  look  it. She did not speak much English, but we did not need
much  language in common to drink at the Blue Hell; and whe went to bed we
discovered that although we had very little conversation in a verbal sense
we communicated beautifully with bodies.
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      AREN'T  THERE  any English-speaking nonsmokers
   |  on Gateway to fill out our crew? Maybe you want to
   |  shorten your life (and our life-support reserves!)
   |  but we two don't. 88-775.
   |
   |      WE DEMAND prospector representation on Gateway
   |  Corporation  Board!  Mass  meeting  tomorrow  1300
   |  Level Babe. Everyone welcome!
   |
   |      SELECT  FLIGHTS  tested, whole-person way from
   |  your  dreams.  32-page sealed book tells how, ~10.
   |  Consultations, $25. 88-139.
   But  Susie  was only there one day a week, and that left a deal of time
which needed destroying.
   I  tried  everything: a reinforcement group, group-hugging, working out
loves  and  hostilities  on  each  other. Old Hegrai lecture series on the
Heechee.  A  program  of talks on astrophysics with a slant toward earning
science  bonuses  from  the Corporation. By careful budgeting of my time I
managed to use it all up, decision was postponed day by day.
   I  do  not  want  to  give  the  impression  that destroying time was a
conscious plan in my mind; I was living from day to day, and day was full.
On a Thursday Susie and Francy Hereira would check in, and the three of us
might  have  lunch  at  the Blue Hell. Then Francy would go off to roam by
himself,  or  pick  up a girl to take a swim in Lake Superior, while Susie
and  I  would retire to my room and my dope sticks to swim on those warmer
waters  of  a  bed. After dinner, some sort of entertainment. Thursday was
the  night  the  astrophysics  lectures  took place, and we would hear all
about  the  Hertzsprung-Russell  diagram, or red giants and blue dwarfs or
neutron  stars,  or  black holes. The professor was a fat old grabber from
some  jerkwater  college  near Smolensk, but through the dirty jokes there
was  poetry  and beauty in what he talked about. He dwelt on the old stars
that  gave  birth  to  us, spitting silicates and magnesium carbonate into
space to form planets, hydrocarbons to form ourselves. He talked about the
neutron  stars  that  bent  the  gravity  well  around them; we knew them,
because  two  launches  had killed themselves, sheared rubble, by entering
normal  space  too  close  to one of those highly dense dwarfs. He told us
about  the  black  holes that were places where a dense star had been, now
detectable  only  by  the  observable  fact that they swallowed everything
nearby,  even  light;  they had not merely bent the gravity well, they had
wrapped it around themselves like a blanket. He described stars as thin as
air,  immense  clouds  of  glowing  gas; told us about the prestars of the
Orion  Nebula, just now blossoming into loose knots of warm gas that might
in a million years be suns. His lectures were very popular; even old hands
like  Shicky  and  Dane  Metchnikov  showed  up.  While  I listened to the
professor  I could feel the wonder and beauty of space. It was too immense
and  glorious  to  be frightening, and it was not until later that I would
relate  those  sinks  of  radiation  and  swamps of thin gas to me, to the
frail,  frightened, pain-sensitive creation that was the body I inhabited.
And  then  I  would think about going out among those remote titans and my
soul curled up inside me.
   After one of those meetings I said good-bye to Susie and Francy and sat
in  an  alcove  near  the  lecture  room,  half  hidden  by  the  ivy, and
despondently  smoked  a  joint.  Shicky found me there, and halted just in
front  of  me,  supporting  himself  on his wings. "I was looking for you,
Rob," he said, and stopped.
   The  grass  was just beginning to hit me. "Interesting lecture," I said
absently,  reaching  for the good feeling that I wanted from the joint and
not really very interested in whether Shicky was there or not.
   "You missed the most interesting part," said Shicky.
   It  occurred  to me that he was looking both fearful and hopeful; there
was  something on his mind. I took another hit, and offered him the joint;
he  shook  his  head.  "Rob,"  he  said, "I think there is something worth
having coming up."
   "Really?"
   "Yes, really, Rob! Something quite good. And soon."
   I  was not ready for this. I wanted to go on smoking my joint until the
temporary  thrill  of the lecture had worn off, so that I could go back to
destroying  the  days.  The last thing I wanted was to hear about some new
mission that my guilt would make me want to sign on for, and my fear would
abort.
   Shicky caught the shelf of ivy and held himself up by it, looking at me
curiously.  "Rob-friend,"  he  said,  "if I can find something out for you
will you help me?"
   "Help you how?"
   |      Dearest Father, Mother, Marisa and Pico
   |
   |      Hello,
   |      Please  tell  Susie's  father that she is very
   |  well  and  is regarded with favor by her officers.
   |  You  can decide for yourselves whether to tell him
   |  that  she  has  been  seeing much of my friend Rob
   |  Broadhead. He is a good man and a serious one, but
   |  he  is  not a fortunate one. Susie has applied for
   |  leave  to  go  on  a  mission,  and if the captain
   |  grants  it  she speaks of going with Broadhead. We
   |  all speak of going but, as you know, we do not all
   |  do it, so perhaps it is not to be worried about.
   |      This  must be very short; it is almost docking
   |  time, and I have a 48 for Gateway.
   |
   |      With all love,
   |      Francescito
   "Take  me  with  you!"  he  cried.  "I  can do everything but go in the
lander.  And  this  mission,  I  think,  is  one where it does not so much
matter. There is a bonus for everyone, even for someone who must remain in
orbit."
   "What  are  you  talking  about?" The grass was hitting me now; I could
feel the warmth behind my knees and the gentle blur all around me.
   "Metchnikov  was  talking  to the lecturer," Shicky said. "I think from
what  he  said that he knows of a new mission. Only-they spoke in Russian,
and  I did not understand very well. But it is the one he has been waiting
for."
   I said reasonably, "The last one he went out on wasn't much, was it?"
   "This is different!"
   "I don't think he would really cut me in on anything good-"
   "Certainly not, if you don't ask."
   "Oh, hell," I grumbled. "All right. I'll talk to him."
   Shicky beamed. "And then, Rob, please-take me with you?"
   I  stubbed  out  the  joint,  less than half smoked; I felt as though I
wanted  what  was  left of my wits about me. "I'll do what I can," I said,
and headed back for the lecture room just as Metchnikov was coming out.
   We  had  not spoken since he had returned. He looked as solid and broad
as  ever,  and  his  fringe  of  chin whiskers was neatly trimmed. "Hello,
Broadhead," he said suspiciously.
   I  didn't waste words. "I hear you've got something good coming up. Can
I go along?"
   He  didn't  waste  words,  either.  "No."  He  looked  at me with frank
dislike. Partly that was what I had expected from him all along, but I was
pretty sure part of it was because he had heard about me and Klara.
   "You  are  going out," I persisted. "What is it, a One?" He stroked his
whiskers. "No," he said reluctantly, "it isn't a One. It's two Fives."
   "Two Fives?"
   He  stared  at me suspiciously for a moment, and then almost grinned; I
did  not like him when he smiled, it was always a question in my mind what
he was smiling about.
   "All  right,"  he  said.  "You want in, you can have it, for all of me.
It's  not  up  to  me,  of  course. You'll have to ask Emma; she's doing a
briefing  tomorrow  morning.  But  she might let you go a science mission,
with a minimum million-dollar bonus. You're involved."
   "I'm  involved?"  That  was  something  out  of  an unexpected rection!
"Involved how?"
   "Ask Emma," he said, and brushed past me.
   There were about a dozen prospectors in the briefing room, most of whom
I  knew: Sess Forehand, Shicky, Metchnikov, a few others I'd drunk with or
gone  to  bed  with,  one  time  or  another. Emma wasn't there yet, and I
managed to intercept her as she was coming in.
   "I want to go out on this mission," I said.
   She  looked  startled.  "You  do?  I  thought-"  But she stopped there,
without saying what it was she thought.
   I followed up: "I have as much right to go as Metchnikov does!"
   "You  sure  as hell don't have as good a record as he does, Broadhead."
She  looked me over carefully, and then she said, "Well, I'll tell you, if
you  want to know how it is, Broadhead. It's a special mission, and partly
you're   responsible  for  it.  That  boner  of  yours  turns  out  to  be
interesting. I don't mean wrecking the ship; that was stupid, and if there
any  justice  in the universe you'd pay for it. But dumb luck is almost as
good as brains."
   "You got the report from Gateway Two," I guessed.
   She  shook  her  head.  "Not  yet.  But  it  doesn't  matter. We finely
programmed  your  mission  into the computer, and it gave some interesting
correlations.  The  course pattern that took you to Gateway Two-Oh, hell,"
she  said,  "come  on  inside. You can sit through the briefing, at least.
It'll explain everything, and then we'll see."
   She  took  my  elbow and pushed me ahead of her into the room which was
the same one we had used for a classroom-how long before? It seemed like a
million years. I sat down between Sess and Shicky, and waited to hear what
it was she had to say.
   "Most of you," she started off, "are here by invitation-with one or two
exceptions.  One  of  the  exceptions  is  our  distinguished  friend  Mr.
Broadhead.  He  managed  to  wreck a ship near Gateway Two, as most of you
know.  By rights we ought to throw the book at him, but before he did that
he  accidentally  turned up some interesting facts. His course colors were
not  the regular ones for Gateway Two, and when the computer compared them
it  came  up  with  a whole new concept of course setting. Apparently only
about  five  settings  are critical for destination-the five that were the
same  for the usual Gateway Two setting, and for Broadhead's new one. What
the other settings mean we don't know. But we're going to find out."
   She  leaned  back  and  folded  her  hands. "This is a multiple-purpose
mission,"  she  said. "We're going to do something new. For openers, we're
going to send two ships to the same destination."
   Sess Forehand raised his hand. "What's the point of that?"
   "Well,  partly  to make sure it is the same destination. We're going to
vary   the   noncritical  settings  slightly...  the  ones  we  think  are
noncritical.  And we're going to start the two ships thirty seconds apart.
Now,  if we know what we're doing, that means you'll come out about as far
apart as Gateway travels in thirty seconds."
   Forehand wrinkled his brow. "Relative to what?"
   "Good  question,"  she  nodded.  "Relative,  we  think, to the Sun. The
stellar motion relative to the Galaxy-we think-can be neglected. At least,
assuming  that your destination turns out to be inside the Galaxy, and not
so  far  away  that the galactic motion has a markedly different vector. I
mean, if you came out on the opposite side, it would be seventy kilometers
a second, relative to the galactic center. We don't think that's involved.
We  only  expect  a relatively minor difference in velocity and direction,
and-well, anyway, you should come out within somewhere between two and two
hundred kilometers of each other.
   "Of  course,"  she  said, smiling cheerfully, "that's only theoretical.
Maybe  the  relative motions won't mean anything at all. In that case, the
problem  is  to  keep  you  from  colliding  with  each  other.  But we're
sure-pretty  sure-that  there  will be at least some displacement. All you
really need is about fifteen meters-the long diameter of a Five."
   "How sure is pretty sure?" one of the girls asked.
   "Well," Emma admitted, "reasonably sure. How do we know until we try?"
   "It  sounds dangerous," Sess commented. He did not seem deterred by it.
He  was only stating an opinion. In this he was unlike me; I was very busy
ignoring  my inner sensations, trying to concentrate on the technicalities
of the briefing.
   |      A NOTE ON SIGNATURES
   |
   |      Dr. Asmenion. So when you're looking for signs
   |  of  life  on a planet, you don't expect a big neon
   |  sign  that  says  "Aliens Live Here." You look for
   |  signatures.  A "signature" is something that shows
   |  something  else is there. Like your signature on a
   |  check.  If  I  see  that, I know it shows that you
   |  want  it paid, so I cash it. Not yours, of course,
   |  Bob.
   |      Question. God hates a smart-assed teacher. Dr.
   |  Asmenion.  no  offense,  Bob. Methane is a typical
   |  signature.  It  shows the presence of warm-blooded
   |  mammals, or something like them.
   |      Question.  I  thought  methane could come from
   |  rotting vegetation and all that?
   |      Dr.  Asmenion.  Oh,  sure. But mostly it comes
   |  from  the  guts  of  large  ruminants. Most of the
   |  methane in the Earth's air is cow farts.
   Emma  looked  surprised.  "That  part?  Look,  I  haven't  come  to the
dangerous  part  yet. This is a nonaccepted destination for all Ones, most
Threes, and some Fives."
   "Why?" someone asked.
   "That's  what  you're going there to find out," she said patiently. "It
happens  to be the setting the computer picked out as best for testing the
correlations  between  course settings. You've got armored Fives, and both
accept  this  particular destination. That means you have what the Heechee
designers figured was a good chance to handle it, right?"
   "That was a long time ago," I objected.
   "Oh,  sure.  I  never  said otherwise. It is dangerous-at least to some
extent. That's what the million is for."
   She  stopped  there,  gravely  considering us, until someone obliged by
asking, "What million?"
   "The million-dollar bonus each one of you gets when you come back," she
said.  "They've  appropriated ten million dollars out of Corporation funds
for  this.  Equal shares. Of course, there's a good chance that it will be
more than a million each. If you find anything worthwhile, the regular pay
scales apply. And the computer thinks this is a good prospect."
   "Why is it worth ten million?" I asked.
   "I don't make these decisions," she said patiently. And then she looked
at  me  as  a  person,  not part of the group, and added, "And by the way,
Broadhead.  We're writing off your damage to the ship. So whatever you get
is  yours  to  keep. A million dollars? That's a nice little nest egg. You
can  go  back  home, buy yourself a little business, live the rest of your
life on that."
   We  looked  at  each other, and Emma just sat there, smiling gently and
waiting.  I  don't  know  what  the others were thinking about. What I was
remembering  was  Gateway  Two and the first trip, wearing our eyes out at
the  instruments,  looking for something that wasn't there. I suppose each
of the others had washouts of their own to remember.
   "Launch,"  she  said at last, "is day after tomorrow. The ones who want
to sign, come see me in my office."
   They accepted me. They turned Shicky down.
   But  it  wasn't as easy as that, nothing ever is; the one who made sure
Shicky  was  not  going  to go along was me. They filled up the first ship
quickly:  Sess  Forehand, two girls from Sierra Leone, a French couple-all
English-speaking,  all briefed, all with previous missions. For the second
ship  Metchnikov  signed  as  crew  right away; a gay couple, Danny A. and
Danny R., were his picks. Then, grudgingly, he agreed to me. And that left
one opening.
   "We  can  take your friend Bakin," Emma said. "Or would you prefer your
other friend?"
   "What other friend?" I demanded.
   "We have an application," she said, "from Gunner Third Susanna Hereira,
off the Brazilian cruiser. She has their permission to take leave for this
purpose."
   "Susie! I didn't know she'd volunteered!"
   Emma  studied  her punch card reflectively. "She's very qualified," she
commented.  "Also,  she  has  all  her  parts.  I  am referring," she said
sweetly,  "to  her  legs,  of course, although as I understand it you have
some  interest in her other parts as well. Or would you care to go gay for
this mission?"
   I  felt  an  unreasoning  rush  of anger. I am not one of your sexually
uptight  people;  the  thought  of  physical  contact  with a male was not
frightening in itself. But-with Dane Metchnikov? Or one of his lovers?
   "Gunner  Hereira  can  be  here  tomorrow,"  Emma  comme "The Brazilian
cruiser is going to dock right after the orbiter."
   "Why the hell are you asking me?" I snarled. "Metchnikov is crew chief."
   "He prefers to leave it to you, Broadhead. Which one?"
   "I  don't  give a damn!" I yelled, and left. But there is no such thing
as  avoiding  a  decision.  Not  making  a decision was in effect decision
enough  to  keep  Shicky off the crew. If I had fought for him, they would
have taken him; without that, Susie was the obvious choice.
   I  spent  the next day staying out of Shicky's way. I picked new a fish
at  the  Blue Hell, fresh out of the classroom, and spent the night in her
room.  I  didn't  even  go  back  to  my  own  room  for clothes; I dumped
everything  and  bought  a new outfit. I pretty well knew the places where
Shicky  might  look  for  me-the  Hell,  Central Park, the museum-and so I
stayed  away from those places; I went for a long, rambling wander through
the deserted tunnels, seeing no one at all, until late that night.
   |      Dear Voice of Gateway:
   |
   |      Last  month  I  spent 58. 50 of my hard-earned
   |  money  to  take  my wife and son to a "lecture" by
   |  one  of your returned ~heroes," who gave Liverpool
   |  the  dubious  honour  of a visit (for which he was
   |  well paid, naturally, by people like me). I didn't
   |  mind  that  he was not a very interesting speaker.
   |  It  was  what  he  flaming well said that drove me
   |  right up the flaming wall. He said we poor sods of
   |  earthlings  had  just  no idea of how dicey things
   |  were for you noble adventurers.
   |      Well,  mate,  this morning I drew out the last
   |  pound in the savings account so the wife could get
   |  a  lung patch (good old melanomic asbestosis CV/E,
   |  you  know). The kid's tuition comes due in a week,
   |  and  I  haven't a clew where it's coming from. And
   |  after   spending   eight-to-twelve   this  morning
   |  waiting  by  the  docks for a chance to shift some
   |  cargo (there wasn't any) the foreman let me know I
   |  was  redundant,  which means tomorrow I don't even
   |  have  to  bother  to  show  up to wait. Any of you
   |  heroes care to pick up a bargain in surplus parts?
   |  Mine  are for sale-kidneys, liver, the lot. All in
   |  good  condition, too, or as good as nineteen years
   |  on the docks can be expected to leave them, except
   |  for  the  tear  glands of the eyes, which are fair
   |  wore  out  with  weeping over the troubles of your
   |  lot.
   |      H.  Delacross  "Wavetops"  Plat B bis 17, 41st
   |  Floor Merseyside L77PR 14JE6
   Then  I  took  a  chance  and  went to our farewell party. Shicky would
probably be there, but there would be other people around.
   He  was.  And  so  was  Louise  Forehand. In fact, she seemed to be the
center of attention; I hadn't even known she was back.
   She  saw  me  and  waved  to  me. "I struck it rich, Rob! Drink up, I'm
buying!"
   I  let  someone  put  a  glass in one hand and a joint in the other and
before I took my hit I managed to ask her what she'd found.
   "Weapons,  Rob! Marvelous Heechee weapons, hundred them. Sess says it's
going  to  be at least a five-million-dollar assessment. Plus royalties...
if anyone finds a way to duplicate the weapons anyway."
   I  let  the  smoke  blow out and washed out the taste with a swallow of
white lightning. "What kind of weapons?"
   "They're  like  the  tunnel  diggers, only portable. They'll cut a hole
through  anything. We lost Sara BellaFanta in the landing; one of them put
a  hole  in her suit. But Tim and I are whacking up her share, so it's two
and a half mil apiece."
   "Congratulations,"  I  said.  "I  would have thought the last thing the
human race needed was some new ways to kill each other-congratulations." I
was reaching for an air of moral superiority and I needed it; because as I
turned away, there was Shicky, hanging in air, watching me.
   "Want a hit?" I asked, offering him the joint.
   He shook his head.
   I said, "Shicky, it wasn't up to me. I told them-I didn't tell them not
to take you."
   "Did you tell them they should?"
   "It wasn't up to me," I said. "Hey, listen!" I went on, suddenly seeing
an  out.  "Now  that  Louise  has hit, Sess probably won't want to go. Why
don't you take his place?"
   He  backed  away,  watching me; only his expression changed. "You don't
know?"  he  asked.  "It is true that Sess canceled out, but he has already
been replaced."
   "By whom?"
   "By the person right behind you," said Shicky, and I turned around, and
there  she  was,  looking  at  me, a glass in her hand and an expression I
could not read on her face.
   "Hello. Rob." said Klara.
   I  had  prepared  myself for the party by a number of quick ones in the
commissary;  I was ninety-percent drunk and ten-percent stoned, but it all
whooshed  out  of  me as I looked at her. I put down the drink, handed the
joint  to  someone  at  random,  took her arm, and pulled her out into the
tunnel.
   "Klara," I said. "Did you get my letters?"
   She  looked  puzzled.  "Letters?" She shook her head. "I guess you sent
them  to Venus? I never got there. I got as far as the rendezvous with the
plane-of-the-ecliptic  flight,  and  then  I changed my mind. I came right
back on the orbiter."
   "Oh, Klara."
   "Oh,  Rob,"  she mimicked, grinning; that wasn't much fun, because when
she smiled I could see where the tooth was missing that I had knocked out.
"So what else have we got to say to each other?"
   I  put  my  arms around her. "I can say that I love you, and I'm sorry,
and  I  want  to  make  it  up  to you, and I want to get married and live
together and have kids and-"
   "Jesus,  Rob,"  she said, pushing me away, gently enough, "when you say
something you say a lot, don't you? So hold it for a while. It'll keep."
   "But it's been months!"
   She  laughed.  "No  fooling, Rob. This is a bad day for Sagittarians to
make decisions, especially about love. We'll talk about it another time."
   "That crap! Listen, I don't believe in any of that!"
   "I do, Rob."
   I  had  an  inspiration.  "Hey!  I bet I can trade with somebody in the
first ship! Or, wait a minute, maybe Susie would trade with you-"
   She  shook  her  head, still smiling. "I really don't think Susie would
like that," she said. "Anyway, they bitched enough about letting me switch
with Sess. They'll never stand still for another last minute change."
   "I don't care, Klara!"
   "Rob,"  she said, "don't rush me. I did a lot of thinking about you and
me.  I think we've got something that's worth working for. But I can't say
it's all straight in my head yet, and I don't want to push it."
   "But, Klara-"
   "Leave  it  at  that  Rob.  I'll be in the first Five, you'll be in the
second.  When  we  get where we're going we'll be able to talk. Maybe even
switch  around  to  come  back  together.  But meanwhile we'll both have a
chance to think about what we really want."
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel  3-184, Voyage O19D14O. Crew S. Kotsis,
   |  A. McCarthy, K. Metsuoko.
   |      Transit  time  out  615  days 9 hours. no crew
   |  reports  from  destination.  Spherical  scan  data
   |  inconclusive  as  to  destination. no identifiable
   |  features.
   |      No summary.
   |      Extract  from log: "This is the 281st day out.
   |  Metsuoko   lost  the  draw  and  suicided.  Alicia
   |  voluntarily suicided 40 days later. We haven't yet
   |  reached  turnaround,  so it's all for nothing. The
   |  remaining  rations  are  not going to be enough to
   |  support  me, even if you include Alicia and Kenny,
   |  who  are  intact  in  the freezer. So I am putting
   |  everything on full automatic and taking the pills.
   |  We  have  all left letters. Please forward them as
   |  addressed, if this goddamned ship ever gets back."
   |      Mission  Plan  filed proposal that a Five with
   |  double  life-support rations and a one-person crew
   |  might  be able to complete this mission and return
   |  successfully.  Proposal  tabled  on grounds of low
   |  priority:  no  evident benefit from repeating this
   |  mission.
   The  only  words  I  seemed to know I seemed to be saying over and over
again: "But, Klara-"
   She kissed me, and pushed me away. "Rob," she said, "don't be in such a
hurry. We've got all the time there is."

   "Tell me something, Sigfrid," I say, "how nervous am I?"
   He  is  wearing  his  Sigmund  Freud  hologram this time, true Viennese
stare,  not a bit gemillich. But his voice is the gently sad baritone: "if
you are asking what my sensors say, Rob, you are quite agitated, yes."
   "I thought so," I say, bouncing around the mat.
   "Can you tell me why?"
   "No!"  The whole week has been like that, marvelous sex with Doreen and
S.  Ya., and floods of tears in the shower; fantastic gambling and play at
the  bridge  tournament,  and total despair on the way home. I feel like a
yo-yo.  "I  feel  like  a yo-yo," I yell. "You opened up something I can't
handle."
   "I  think  you  underestimate your capacity for handling pain," he says
reassuringly.
   "Fuck you, Sigfrid! What do you know about human capacities?"
   He almost sighs. "Are we back to that again, Rob?"
   "We bloody well are!" And funnily, I feel less nervous; I goad him into
an argument again, and the peril is reduced.
   "It  is  true, Rob, that I am a machine. But I am a machine designed to
understand  what  humans  are  like  and, believe me, well designed for my
function."
   "Designed! Sigfrid," I say reasonably, "you aren't human. You may know,
but  you  don't  feel. You have no idea what it feels like to have to make
human  decisions  and carry the load of human emotion. You don't know what
it  feels  like  to  have  to  tie a friend up to keep him from committing
murder.  To  have  someone  you  love  die. To know it's your fault. To be
scared out of your mind."
   "I  do know those things, Rob," he says gently. "I really do. I want to
explore why you are feeling so turbulent, so won't you please help me?"
   "No!"
   "But  your  agitation,  Rob,  means that we are approaching the central
pain-"
   "Get  your bloody drill out of my nerve!" But the analogy doesn't throw
him for a second; his circuits are finely tuned today.
   "I'm not your dentist, Rob, I'm your analyst, and I tell you-"
   "Stop!" I know what I have to do to get him away from where it hurts. I
haven't used S. Ya. 's secret little formula since that first day, but now
I want to use it again. I say the words, and convert him from a tiger to a
pussycat;  he rolls over and lets me stroke his tummy, as I command him to
display  the  gaudier bits from some of his interviews with attractive and
highly  quirky  female  patients;  and  the rest of the hour is spent as a
peepshow; and I have got out of his room one more time intact.
   Or nearly.

   Out  in the holes where the Heechee hid, out in the caves of the stars,
sliding  the  tunnels  they  slashed  and slid, healing the Heechee-hacked
scars....  Jesus,  it was like a Boy Scout camp; we sang and frolicked all
the nineteen days after turnaround. I don't think I ever felt that good in
my  life.  Partly  it was release from fear; when we hit turnaround we all
breathed  easier,  as  always do. Partly it was that the first half of the
trip  had  been pretty gritty, with Metchnikov and his two boyfriends in a
complicated  triple  spat  most  of  the time and Susie Hereira a lot less
interested  in  me on shipboard than she had been as a once-a-night out on
Gateway. But mostly, I think, for me anyway, it knowing that I was getting
closer  and closer to Klara. Danny A. helped me work out the figures; he'd
taught  some  of  the  courses  on Gateway, and he may have been wrong but
there  wasn't  any around righter so I took his word for it: he calculated
from  time  of  turnaround that we were going something like three hundred
light-years  in  all-a  guess,  sure,  but close enough. The ship, the one
Klara  was  in, was getting farther and farther ahead of us all the way to
turnaround,  at which point we were doing something over ten light-years a
day (or so Danny said).
   |      Classifieds.
   |
   |      INTERESTS  HARPSICHORD,  Go,  group  sex. Seek
   |  four  likeminded  prospectors view toward teaming.
   |  Gerriman, 78-109.
   |
   |      TUNNEL SALE. Must sell holodisks, clothes, sex
   |  aids,   books,   everything.  Level  Babe,  Tunnel
   |  Twelve,  ask for DeVittorio, 1100 hours until it's
   |  all gone.
   |
   |      TENTH  MAN  needed  for  minyan  for  Abram R.
   |  Sorchuk,  presumed  dead,  also ninth, eighth, and
   |  seventh men. Please. 87-103.
   The first Five had been launched thirty seconds ahead of us, so then it
was  just arithmetic: about one light-day. 3 x lO^8 centimeters per second
times  60 seconds times 60 minutes times 24 hours. At turnaround Klara was
a good seventeen and a half billion kilometers ahead of us. It seemed very
far,  and  was.  But  after  turnaround  we were getting closer every day,
following  her  in  the same weird hole through space that the Heechee had
drilled for us. Where our ship was going, hers had gone. I could feel that
we  were  catching  up;  sometimes  I  fantasized  that  I could smell her
perfume.
   When  I  said  something like that to Danny A. he looked at me queerly.
"Do you know how far seventeen and a half billion kilometers is? You could
fit the whole solar system in between them and us. Just about exactly; the
semimajor axis of Pluto's orbit is thirty-nine A. U. and change."
   I laughed, a little embarrassed. "It was just a notion."
   "So  go  to  sleep," he said, "and have a nice dream about it." He knew
how  I  felt about Klara; the whole ship did, even Metchnikov, even Susie,
and  maybe that was a fantasy, too, but I thought they all wished us well.
We  were  all  wishing  all of us well, constructing elaborate plans about
what  we were going to do with our bonuses. For Klara and me, at a million
dollars  apiece, it came to a right nice piece of change. Maybe not enough
for  Full  Medical-no, not if we wanted anything left over to have fun on.
But  Major  Medical,  at  least,  which  meant really good health, barring
something  terribly  damaging, for another thirty or forty years. We could
live  happily  ever after on what was left over: travel; children and nice
home  in  a  decent part of-wait a minute, I cautioned myself. Home where?
Not  back  anywhere  near the food mines. Maybe not on Earth at all. Would
Klara  want  to go back to Venus? I couldn't see myself taking to the life
of  a  tunnel rat. But I couldn't see Klara in Dallas or New York, either.
Of  course,  I  thought, my wish racing far ahead of reality, if we really
found anything a lousy million apiece might be only the beginning. Then we
could  have  all the homes we wanted, anywhere we liked; and Full Medical,
too,  with  transplants  to  keep  us  young and healthy and beautiful and
sexually  strong and-"You really ought to go to sleep," said Danny A. from
the seat next to mine; "the way you thrash around is a caution."
   But  I  didn't feel like going to sleep. I was hungry, and there wasn't
any  reason  not  to  eat.  For  nineteen days we had been practicing food
discipline,  which is what you do on the way out for the first half of the
trip. Once you've reached turnaround you know how much you can consume for
the  rest  of  the  trip,  which  is why some prospectors come back fat. I
climbed  down  out  of  the  lander,  where Susie and both the Dannys were
sacked  in,  and  then  I found out what it was that was making me hungry.
Dane Metchnikov was cooking himself a stew.
   "Is there enough for two?"
   He  looked  at me thoughtfully. "I guess so." He opened the squeeze-fit
lid,  peered inside, milked another hundred cc of water into it out of the
vapor  trap, and said, "Give it another ten minutes. I was going to have a
drink first."
   I  accepted  the invitation, and we passed a wine flask back and forth.
While  he  shook  the  stew  and  added  a dollop of salt, I took the star
readings  for  him.  We were still close to maximum velocity and there was
nothing  on  the  viewscreen that looked like a familiar constellation, or
even  much like a star; but it was all beginning to look friendly and good
to  me.  To  all of us. I'd never seen Dane so cheerful and relaxed. "I've
been  thinking,"  he  said.  "A million's enough. After this one I'm going
back  to  Syracuse,  get my doctorate, get a job. There's going to be some
school  somewhere  that'll  want a poet in residence or an English teacher
who's been on seven missions. They'll pay me something, and the money from
this will keep me in extras all the rest of my life."
   All  I had really heard was the one word, and that I had heard loud and
surprising: "Poet?"
   He  grinned.  "Didn't  you  know?  That's  how  I  got  to Gateway; the
Guggenheim  Foundation  paid  my  way." He took the pot out of the cooker,
divided the stew into two dishes, and we ate.
   This  was the fellow who had been shrieking viciously at the two Dannys
for  a  solid  hour,  two  days  before,  while  Susie and I lay angry and
isolated  in  the  lander,  listening. It was all turnaround. We were home
free;  the  mission  wasn't  going to strand us out of fuel, and we didn't
have to worry about finding anything, because our reward was guaranteed. I
asked  him  about his poetry. He wouldn't recite any, but promised to show
me  copies  of  what  he'd  sent  back  to the Guggenheims when we reached
Gateway again.
   And when we'd finished eating, and wiped out the pot and dishes and put
them away, Dane looked at his watch. "Too early to wake the others up," he
said, "and not a damn thing to do."
   |      A NOTE ON PIEZOELECTRICITY
   |
   |      Professor Hegramet. The one thing we found out
   |  about blood diamonds is that they're fantastically
   |  piezoelectric. Does anybody know what that means?
   |      Question.  They  expand  and  contract when an
   |  electric current is imposed?
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  Yes.  And  the other way
   |  around.  Squeeze them and they generate a current.
   |  Very rapidly if you like. That's the basis for the
   |  piezophone     and     piezovision.     About    a
   |  fifty-billion-dollar industry.
   |      Question. Who gets the royalties on all that loot?
   |      Professor Hegramet. You know, I thought one of
   |  you  would  ask  that. Nobody does. Blood diamonds
   |  were  found  years  and  years ago, in the Heechee
   |  warrens back on Venus. Long before Gateway. It was
   |  Bell  Labs  that  figured  out  how  to  use them.
   |  Actually  they use something a little different, a
   |  synthetic   they   developed.   They   make  great
   |  communications  systems,  and Bell doesn't have to
   |  pay anybody but themselves.
   |      Question. Did the Heechee use them for that?
   |      Professor  Hegrctinet.  My personal opinion is
   |  that  they  probably  did,  but  I don't know how.
   |  You'd  think if they left them around they'd leave
   |  the  rest  of  the  communications  receivers  and
   |  transmitters,  too,  but  if they did I don't know
   |  where.
   He looked at me, smiling. It was a real smile, not a grin; and I pushed
myself over to him, and sat in the warm and welcome circle of his arm.
   And  nineteen days went like an hour, and then the clock told us it was
almost  time to arrive. We were all awake, crowded into the capsule, eager
as  kids  at Christmas, waiting to open our toys. It had been the happiest
trip  I  had ever made, and probably one of the happiest ever. "You know,"
said  Danny R. thoughtfully, "I'm almost sorry to arrive." And Susie, just
beginning to understand our English, said:
   "Sim,  ja sei," and then, "I too!" She squeezed my hand, and I squeezed
back;  but  what  I  was really thinking about was Klara. We had tried the
radio  a  couple  of  times,  but  it didn't work in the Heechee wormholes
through  space.  But  when  we  came out I would be able to talk to her! I
didn't  mind  that  others  would  be listening, I knew what it was that I
wanted  to  say.  I even knew what she would answer. There was no question
about  it;  there  was surely as much euphoria in her ship as in ours, for
the  same  reasons,  and  with all that love and joy the answer was not in
doubt.
   "We're stopping!" Danny R. yelled. "Can you feel it?"
   "Yes!"  crowed  Metchnikov,  bouncing  with  the  tiny  surges  of  the
pseudo-gravity  that  marked  our  return  to  normal space. And there was
another  sign,  too:  the  golden  helix  in  the  center of the cabin was
beginning to glow, brighter every second.
   "I  think  we've made it," said Danny R., bursting with pleasure, and I
was as pleased as he.
   "I'll  start the spherical scan," I said, confident that I knew what to
do.  Susie  took her cue from me and opened the door up to the lander; she
and Danny A. were going to go out for the star sights.
   But  Danny  A.  didn't join her. He was staring at the viewscreen. As I
started the ship turning, I could see stars, which was normal enough; they
did not seem special in any way, although they were rather blurry for some
reason.
   I staggered and almost fell. The ship's rotation did not seem as smooth
as it should be.
   "The  radio,"  Danny  said, and Metchnikov, frowning, looked up and saw
the light.
   "Turn it on," I cried. The voice I heard might be Klara's.
   |      NavlnstGdSup 104
   |
   |      Please  supplement your Navigation Instruction
   |  Guide as follows:
   |      Course   settings  containing  the  lines  and
   |  colors  as  shown  in the attached chart appear to
   |  have  a definite relation to the amount of fuel or
   |  other  propulsion  necessity  remaining for use by
   |  the vessel.
   |      All  prospectors  are cautioned that the three
   |  bright  lines  in  the  orange (Chart 2) appear to
   |  indicate  extreme  shortage.  no vessel displaying
   |  them  in  its  course has ever returned, even from
   |  check flights.
   Metchnikov,  still frowning, reached for the switch, and then I noticed
that the helix was a brighter gold than I had ever seen it: straw-colored,
as  though  it  were  incandescently  hot. no heat from it, but the golden
color was shot through with streaks of white.
   "That's funny," I said, pointing.
   I  don't  know  if  anyone  heard me; the radio was pouring static, and
inside  the  capsule  the  sound was very loud. Metchnikov grabbed for the
tuning and the gain. Over the static I heard a voice I didn't recognize at
first.  It  was Danny A. 's. "Do you feel that?" he yelled. "It's gravity!
We're in trouble. Stop the scan!"
   I stopped it reflexively.
   But  by  then the ship's screen had turned and something came into view
that  was  not  a  star  and  not a galaxy. It was a dim mass of pale-blue
light,  mottled,  immense,  and terrifying at the first glimpse. I knew it
was  not  a sun. no sun can be so big and so dim. It hurt the eyes to look
at it, not because of brightness. It hurt inside the eyes, up far into the
optic nerve. The pain was in the brain itself.
   Metchnikov  switched  off the radio, and in the silence that followed I
heard  Danny A. say prayerfully, "Dearest God, we've had it. That thing is
a black hole."

   "With  your  permission,  Rob,"  says  Sigfrid,  "I'd  like  to explore
something with you before you command me into my passive play mode."
   I tighten up; the son of a bitch has read my mind. "I observe," he says
instantly,  "that  you are feeling some apprehension. That is what I would
like to explore."
   Incredible,  I  feel  myself  trying  to save his feelings. Sometimes I
forget  he's  a machine. "I didn't know you were aware that I'd been doing
that," I apologize.
   "Of  course I'm aware, Rob. When you have given me the proper command I
obey  it,  but  you  have  not  ever  given me the command to refrain from
recording and integrating data. I assume you do not possess that command."
   "You assume good, Sigfrid."
   "There  is  no  reason  that  you  should  not  have access to whatever
information I possess. I have not attempted to interfere before now-"
   "Could you?"
   "I  do  have the capacity to signal the use of the command construction
to higher authority, yes. I have not done that."
   "Why not?" The old bag of bolts keeps on surprising me; all this is new
to me.
   "As  I have said, there is no reason to. But clearly you are attempting
to  postpone some sort of confrontation, and I would like to tell you what
I think that confrontation involves. Then you can make your own decision."
   "Oh,  cripes."  I  throw  off  the straps and sit up. "Do you mind if I
smoke?" I know what the answer is going to be, but he surprises me again.
   "Under the circumstances, no. If you feel the need of a tension reducer
I  agree.  I  had  even considered offering you a mild tranquilizer if you
wish it."
   "Jesus,"  I  say  admiringly,  lighting  up-and I actually have to stop
myself from offering him one! "All right, let's have it."
   Sigfrid  gets up, stretches his legs, and crosses to a more comfortable
chair! I hadn't known he could do that, either. "I am trying to put you at
your ease, Rob," he says, "as I am sure you observe. First let me tell you
something  about  my capacities-and yours-which I do not think you know. I
can  provide  information  about  any  of my clients. That is, you are not
limited to those who have had access to this particular terminal."
   "I  don't  think  I  understand that," I say, after he has paused for a
moment.
   "I think you do. Or will. When you want to. However, the more important
question  is  what memory you are attempting to keep suppressed. I feel it
is  necessary  for  you to unblock it. I had considered offering you light
hypnosis,  or a tranquilizer, or even a fully human analyst to come in for
one  session,  and  any  or  all of those are at your disposal if you wish
them.  But  I  have  observed  that  you  are  relatively  comfortable  in
discussions about what you perceive as objective reality, as distinguished
from  your  internalization  of  reality.  So  I  would  like to explore a
particular incident with you in those terms."
   I  carefully tap some ash off the end of my cigarette. He's right about
that;  as  long as we keep the conversation abstract and impersonal, I can
talk about anybloodything. "What incident is that, Sigfrid?"
   "Your  final  prospecting voyage from Gateway, Rob. Let me refresh your
memory-"
   "Jesus, Sigfrid!"
   "I  know  you  think you recall it perfectly," he says, interpreting me
exactly,  "and in that sense I don't suppose your memory needs refreshing.
But what is interesting about that particular episode is that all the main
areas  of  your  internal  concern seem to concentrate there. Your terror.
Your homosexual tendencies-"
   "Hey!"
   "-which  are  not, to be sure, a major part of your sexuality, Rob, but
which  give  you  more concern than is warranted. Your feelings about your
mother.  The  immense burden of guilt you put on yourself. And, above all,
the  woman  Gelle-Klara  Moynlin.  All these things recur over and over in
your  dreams,  Rob, and you often do not make the identification. And they
are all present in this one episode."
   I  stub out a cigarette, and realize that I have had two going at once.
"I don't see the part about my mother," I say at last.
   "You don't?" The hologram that I call Sigirid von Shrink moves toward a
corner of the room. "Let me show you a picture." He raises his hand-that's
pure  theater,  I  know  it  is-and  in the corner there appears a woman's
figure.  It  is not very clear, but it is quite slim, and is in the act of
covering a cough.
   "It's not a very good resemblance to my mother," I object.
   "Isn't it?"
   "Well,"  I say generously, "I suppose it's the best you can do. I mean,
not having anything to go on except, I guess, my description of her."
   "The  picture,"  says  Sigfrid  gently enough, "was assembled from your
description of the girl Susie Hereira."
   I  light  another  cigarette,  with some difficulty, because my hand is
shaking.  "Wow,"  I  say, with real admiration. "I take my hat off to you,
Sigfrid.  That's  very  interesting. Of course," I go on, suddenly feeling
irritable,  "Susie  was,  my  God, only a child! And from that I realize-I
realize  now,  I mean-that there are some resemblances. But the age is all
wrong."
   "Rob," says Sigfrid, "how old was your mother when you were little?"
   "She  was  very young." I add after a moment, "As a matter of fact, she
looked a lot younger than she was even."
   Sigfrid  lets  me  hang  there for a moment, and then he waves his hand
again  and the figure disappears, and instead we are suddenly looking at a
picture  of two Fives butted lander-to-lander in midspace, and beyond them
is-is-"Oh, my God, Sigfrid," I say. He waits me out for a while. As far as
I  am  concerned, he can wait forever; I simply do not know what to say. I
am  not  hurting,  but I am paralyzed. I cannot say anything, and I cannot
move.
   "This,"   he   begins,   speaking   very   softly  and  gently,  "is  a
reconstruction  of the two ships in your expedition in the vicinity of the
object  SAG YY. It is a black hole or, more accurately, a singularity in a
state of extremely rapid rotation."
   "I know what it is, Sigfrid."
   "Yes. You do. Because of its rotation, the translation velocity of what
is  called  its event threshold or Schwarzschlld discontinuity exceeds the
speed of light, and so it is not properly black; in fact it can be seen by
virtue  of  what  is  called  Cerenkov  radiation.  It  was because of the
instrument readings on this and other aspects of the singularity that your
expedition  was  awarded  a  ten-million-dollar  bonus, in addition to the
agreed-upon  sum  which,  along  with certain other lesser amounts, is the
foundation of your present fortune."
   "I know that, too, Sigfrid." Pause.
   "Would you care to tell me what else you know about it, Rob?"
   Pause.
   "I'm not sure I can, Sigfrid."
   Pause again.
   He  isn't  even  urging  me to try. He knows that he doesn't have to. I
want  to try, and I take my cue from his own manner. There is something in
there  that  I  can't  talk about, that scares me even to think about; but
wrapped  around  that  central terror there is something I can talk about,
and that is the objective reality.
   "I don't know how much you know about singularities, Sigfrid."
   "Perhaps  you  can  just say what you think it is that I ought to know,
Rob."
   I  put  out the current cigarette and light another one. "Well," I say,
"you know and I know that if you really wanted to know about singularities
it's  all  in  the  data-banks  somewhere,  and  a  lot  more  exactly and
informatively  than I can say it, but anyway.. The thing about black holes
is  they're  traps.  They  bend  light. They bend time. Once you're in you
can't get out. Only... Only..."
   |      A NOTE ON NUTRITION
   |
   |      Question. What did the Heechee eat?
   |      Professor  Hegramet. About what we do, I would
   |  say.  Everything. I think they were omnivores, ate
   |  anything  they could catch. We really don't know a
   |  thing  about  their diet, except that you can make
   |  some deductions from the shell missions.
   |      Question. Shell missions?
   |      Professor  Hegramet.  There  are at least four
   |  recorded missions that didn't go as far as another
   |  star,  but went clear out of the solar system. Out
   |  where  the  shell  of  comets hangs out, you know,
   |  half  a  light-year  or  so away. The missions are
   |  marked  as  failures,  but I don't think they are.
   |  I've  been  pushing  the  Board  to  give  science
   |  bonuses  for  them.  Three  seemed  to  wind up in
   |  meteorite  swarms.  The other came out at a comet,
   |  all  hundreds  of  A. U. out. Meteorite swarms, of
   |  course,  are  usually  the  debris  of  old,  dead
   |  comets.
   |      Question. Are you saying the Heechee ate comets?
   |      Professor  Hegramet. Ate the things comets are
   |  made  out  of.  Do you know what they are? Carbon,
   |  oxygen,  nitrogen,  hydrogen-the same elements you
   |  ate  for  breakfast.  I think they used comets for
   |  feedstocks  to  manufacture what they ate. I think
   |  one  of  those  missions  to the cometary shell is
   |  sooner  or  later  going to turn up a Heechee food
   |  factory, and then maybe we won't have anybody ever
   |  starving anywhere anymore.
   After a moment Sigfrid says, "It's all right for you to cry if you want
to,  Rob,"  which  is the way that I suddenly realize that that's what I'm
doing.
   "Jesus," I say, and blow my nose into one of the tissues that he always
keeps handy right next to the mat. He waits.
   "Only I did get out," I say.
   And  Sigfrid  does  something  else  I  had never expected from him; he
permits himself a joke. "That," he says, "is pretty obvious, from the fact
that you're here."
   "This is bloody exhausting, Sigfrid," I say.
   "I am sure it is for you, Rob."
   "I wish I had a drink."
   Click.  "The  cabinet  behind you," says Sigfrid, "that has just opened
contains  some rather good sherry. It isn't made from grapes, I'm sorry to
say;  the  health  service  doesn't  go in for luxuries. But I don't think
you'll  be aware of its natural-gas origins. Oh, and it is laced with just
a dollop of THC to soothe the nerves."
   "Holy  Christ,"  I  say, having run out of ways of expressing surprise.
The sherry is all he says it is, and I can feel the warmth of it expanding
inside me.
   "Okay,"  I  say,  setting  the  glass  down.  "Well. When I got back to
Gateway  they'd written the expedition off. We were almost a year overdue.
Because we'd been almost inside the event horizon. Do you understand about
time  dilation?... Oh, never mind," I say, before he can answer, "that was
a  rhetorical  question.  What I mean is, what happened was the phenomenon
they  call time dilation. You get that close to a singularity and you come
up  against  the  twin paradox. What was maybe a quarter of an hour for us
was  almost  a  year  by  clock  time-clock  time  on Gateway, or here, or
anywhere else in the nonrelativistic universe, I mean. And-"
   I take another drink, then I go on bravely enough:
   "And  if we'd gone any farther down we would have been going slower and
slower.  Slower, and slower, and slower. A little closer, and that fifteen
minutes  would  have turned out to be a decade. A little closer still, and
it  would  have been a century. It was that close, Sigfrid. We were almost
trapped, all of us.
   "But I got out."
   And  I  think  of something and look at my watch. "Speaking of time, my
hour's been up for the last five minutes!"
   "I have no other appointments this afternoon, Rob."
   I stare. "What?"
   Gently:
   "I cleared my calendar before your appointment, Rob."
   I  don't say "Holy Christ" again, but I surely think it. "This makes me
feel right up against the wall, Sigfrid!" I say angrily.
   "I  am  not  forcing you to stay past your hour, Rob. I am pointing out
that you have that option if you choose."
   I mull that for a while.
   "You  are  one brassbound ringding of a computer, Sigfrid," I say. "All
right.  Well,  you  see, there was no way we could get out considered as a
unit.  Our  ships  were caught, well inside the of point of no return, and
there  just  ain't  no  way  home from there. But Danny A., he was a sharp
article.  And  he  knew  all  about the holes in the laws. Considered as a
unit, we were stuck.
   "But we weren't a unit! We were two ships! And each of those came apart
into  two  other ships! And if we could somehow transfer acceleration from
one  part  of our system to the other and you know, kick part of us deeper
into  the well and at the same kick the other part up and out-then part of
the unit could get free!"
   Long pause.
   "Why  don't  you  have  another  drink, Rob?" says Sigfrid courteously.
"After you finish crying, I mean."

   Fear!  There  was  so  much terror jumping around inside my skin that I
couldn't  feel  it anymore; my senses were saturated with it; I don't know
if  I  screamed  or  babbled, I only did what Danny A. told me to do. We'd
backed the two ships together and linked up, lander-to-lander, and we were
trying  to manhandle gear, instruments, clothes, everything that moved out
of  the  first  ship into whatever corners we could find of the second, to
make  room  for ten people where five were a tight fit. Hand to hand, back
and  forth,  we  bucket-brigaded the stuff. Dane Metchnikov's kidneys must
have  been  kicked  black-and-blue; he was the one who was in the landers,
changing  the fuel-metering switches to blow every drop of hydrox at once.
Would  we  survive  that?  We  had  no way of knowing. Both our Fives were
armored,  and we didn't expect to damage the Heechee-metal shells. But the
contents of the shells would be us, all of us in the one of them that went
free-or  we  hoped  would  go free-and there wasn't really any way to tell
whether  we could come free in the first place, or whether what would come
free  would  be nothing but jelly, anyway. And all we had was minutes, and
not very many of them. I guess I passed Klara twenty times in ten minutes,
and  I  remember  that  once,  the first time, we kissed. Or aimed at each
other's lips, and came close enough. I remember the smell of her, and once
lifting my head because the musk oil was so strong and not seeing her, and
then  forgetting  it  again.  And  all  the time, out of one viewscreen or
another,  that  immense  broad, baleful blue ball hung flickering outside;
the racing shadows across its surface that were phase effects made fearful
pictures; the gripping grab of its gravity waves tugged at our guts. Danny
A.  was  in  the  capsule of the first ship, watching the time and kicking
bags  and  bundles down to the lander hatch to pass on, through the hatch,
through  the  landers,  up  to  the capsule of the second ship where I was
pushing  them  out  of the way, any which way, just to make room for more.
"Five minutes," he'd yell, and "Four minutes!" and "Three minutes, get the
goddamn  lead  out!"  and  then,  "That's it! All of you! Drop what you're
doing  and  come  on  up here." And we did. All of us. All but me. I could
hear  the  others  yelling, and then calling to me; but I'd fallen behind,
our own lander was blocked, I couldn't get through the hatch! And I tugged
somebody's  duffelbag out of the way, just as Klara was screaming over the
TBS  radio, "Rob! Rob, for God's sake, get up here!" And I knew it was too
late;  and  I slammed  the hatch and dogged it down, just as I heard Danny
A.'s voice shouting, "No! No! Wait...."
   |      Dear Voice of Gateway:
   |
   |      On  Wednesday  of last week I was crossing the
   |  parking  lot  at  the Safeway Supermarket (where I
   |  had  gone to deposit my food stamps) on the way to
   |  the  shuttle  bus  to  my apartment, when I saw an
   |  unearthly green light. A strange spacecraft landed
   |  nearby. Four beautiful, but very tiny, young women
   |  in  filmy  white  robes  emerged  and subjected me
   |  helpless  by  means of a paralyzing ray. They kept
   |  me  prisoner  on  their  craft for nineteen hours.
   |  During  that  time  they  subjected  me to certain
   |  indignities   of   a  sexual  nature  which  I  am
   |  honor-bound not to reveal. The leader of the four,
   |  whose  name was Moira Glow-Fawn, stated that, like
   |  us,  they  have  not succeeded in fully overcoming
   |  their  animal  heritage.  I accepted their apology
   |  and  agreed  to  deliver  four  messages to Earth.
   |  Messages One and Four I may not announce until the
   |  proper  time. Message Two is a private one for the
   |  manager  of my apartment project. Message Three is
   |  for  you  at  Gateway,  and it has three parts: 1,
   |  there  must be no more cigarette smoking; 2, there
   |  must  be no more mixed schooling of boys and girls
   |  at  least until the second year of college; 3, you
   |  must stop all exploration of space at once. We are
   |  being watched.
   |      Harry Hellison Pittsburgh
   Wait...
   Wait for a very, very long time.
   |  We sometimes get squashed, and we sometimes get burned,
   |  And we sometimes get shredded to bits,
   |  And we sometimes get fat on the Royalties Earned,
   |  And we're always scared out of our wits.
   |  We don't care which-Little lost Heechee, start making us rich!

   After  a while, I don't know how long, I raise my head and say, "Sorry,
Sigfrid."
   "For what, Rob?"
   "For  crying  like  this." I am physically exhausted. It is as if I had
run ten miles through a gauntlet of mad Choctaws pounding me with clubs.
   "Are you feeling better now, Rob?"
   "Better?"  I  puzzle over that stupid question for a moment, and then I
take  inventory,  and, curiously enough, I am. "Why, yeah. I guess so. Not
what you'd call good. But better."
   "Take it easy for a minute, Rob."
   That  strikes  me as a dumb remark, and I tell him so. I have about the
energy  level of a small, arthritic jellyfish that's been dead for a week.
I have no choice but to take it easy.
   But  I  do  feel  better.  "I feel," I say, "as if I let myself feel my
guilt at last."
   "And you survived it."
   I think that over. "I guess I did," I say.
   "Let's explore that question of guilt, Rob. Guilt why?"
   "Because I jettisoned nine people to save myself, asshole!"
   |      NOTICE OF CREDIT To ROBINETTE BROADHEAD:
   |
   |      1.  Acknowledgment  is  made  that your course
   |  setting  for Gateway II permits round-trip flights
   |  with  a  travel-time  saving  of approximately 100
   |  days  over  the  previous standard course for this
   |  object.
   |      2. By decision of the Board, you are granted a
   |  discovery  royalty of 1 percent on all earnings on
   |  future  flights  using said course setting, and an
   |  advance of $10,000 against said royalty.
   |      3.  By decision of the Board, you are assessed
   |  one-half  of said royalty and advance as a penalty
   |  for damage to the vessel employed.
   |      Your  account  is  therefore CREDITED with the
   |  following  amount:  Royalty  advance  (Board Order
   |  A-135-7), less deduction (Board Order A-135-8):
   |      $5,000 Your present BALANCE is:
   |      $6,192
   "Has anyone ever accused you of that? Anyone but yourself, I mean?"
   "Accused?"  I blow my nose again, thinking. "Well, no. Why should they?
When  I  got back I was kind of a hero." I think about Shicky, so kind, so
mothering;  and  Francy  Hereira  holding me in his arms, letting me bawl,
even  though  I'd  killed his cousin. "But they weren't there. They didn't
see me blow the tanks to get free."
   "Did you blow the tanks?"
   "Oh,  hell,  Sigfrid,"  I  say,  "I  don't  know. I was going to. I was
reaching for the button."
   "Does  it  make  sense that the button in the ship you were planning to
abandon would actually fire the combined tanks in the landers?"
   "Why not? I don't know. Anyway," I say, "you can't give me any alibis I
haven't  already thought of for myself. I know maybe Danny or Klara pushed
the button before I did. But I was reaching for mine!"
   "And which ship did you think would go free?"
   "Theirs! Mine," I correct myself. "No, I don't know."
   Sigfrid  says gravely, "Actually, that was a very resourceful thing you
did.  You knew you couldn't all have survived. There wasn't time. The only
choice was whether some of you would die, or all of you would. You elected
to see that somebody lived."
   "Crap! I'm a murderer!"
   Pause,  while  Sigfrid's  circuits  think  that  over.  "Rob,"  he says
carefully,  "I  think  you're contradicting yourself. Didn't you say she's
still alive in that discontinuity?"
   "They all are! Time has stopped for them!"
   "Then how could you have murdered anybody?"
   "What?"
   He says again, "How could you have murdered anybody?"
   "... I don't know," I say, "but, honestly, Sigfrid, I really don't want
to think about it anymore today."
   "There's  no  reason you should, Rob. I wonder if you have any idea how
much  you've  accomplished  in the past two and a half hours. I'm proud of
you!"
   And  queerly,  incongruously, I believe he is, chips, Heechee circuits,
holograms and all, and it makes me feel good to believe it.
   "You  can  go any time you want to," he says, getting up and going back
to  his easy chair in the most lifelike way possible, even grinning at me!
"But  I  think  I would like to show you something first." My defenses are
eroded down to nothing. I only say, "What's that, Sigfrid?"
   "That other capability of ours that I mentioned, Rob," he "the one that
we've  never used. I would like to display another patient, from some time
back."
   "Another patient?"
   He says gently, "Look over in the corner, Rob."
   I look-
   -and there she is.
   "Klara!"  And  as  soon  as  I  see  her  I know where Sigfrid gets her
from-the  machine  Klara  was  consulting  back on Gateway. She is hanging
there,  one  arm  across a file rack, her feet lazily floating in the air,
talking  earnestly;  her  broad black eyebrows frown and sigh and her face
grins, and grimaces, and then looks sweetly, invitingly relaxed.
   "You can hear what she's saying if you want to, Rob."
   "Do I want to?"
   "Not  necessarily. But there's nothing in it to be afraid of. She loved
you, Rob, the best way she knew how. The same as you loved her."
   I look for a long time, and then I say, "Turn her off, Sigfrid. Please."
   In  the  recovery  room I almost fall asleep for a moment. I have never
been so relaxed.
   I wash my face, and smoke another cigarette, and then I go out into the
bright  diffuse  daylight  under  the Bubble, and it all is so good and so
friendly.  I think of Klara with love and tenderness and in my heart I say
good-bye  to  her.  And then I think of S. Ya. with whom I have a date for
that evening-if I'm not already late for it! But she'll wait; she's a good
scout, almost as good as Klara.
   Klara.
   I  stop  in  the  middle  of the mall, and people bump up against me. A
little old lady in short-shorts toddles over to me and asks, "Is something
wrong?"
   I  stare at her, and don't answer; and then I turn around and head back
for Sigfrid's office.
   There is no one there, not even a hologram. I yell, "Sigfrid! Where the
hell are you?"
   |      NOTICE OF CREDIT To ROBINETTE BROADHEAD:
   |
   |      Your  account  is  CREDITED with the following
   |  amounts:  Guaranteed  bonus for Mission 88-90A and
   |  88-90B (survivorship total):
   |      $10,000,000 Science bonus awarded by Board:
   |      8,500,000 Total:
   |      $18,500,000 Your present BALANCE is:
   |      $18,506,036
   No  one.  no answer. This is the first time I've ever been in this room
when  it  wasn't set up. I can see what is real and what hologram now; and
not much of it is real. Powder-metal studs for projectors. The mat (real);
the  cabinet with the light (real); a few other pieces of furniture that I
might  want  to  see or use. But no Sigirid. Not even the chair he usually
sits in. "Sigfrid!"
   I  keep  on  yelling,  with my heart bubbling up in my throat, my brain
spinning.  "Sigfrid!"  I  scream,  and  at last there is a of a haze and a
flash and there he is in his Sigmund Freud guise looking at me politely.
   "Yes, Rob?"
   "Sigfrid, I did murder her! She's gone!"
   "I  see  that  you're upset, Rob," he says. "Can you tell me what it is
that's bothering you?"
   "Upset!  I'm  worse  than  upset, Sigfrid, I'm a person who killed nine
other people to save his life! Maybe not 'really'! Maybe not 'on purpose'!
But in their eyes I killed them, as much as in mine."
   "But Rob," he says reasonably, "we've been all over this. They're still
alive; they all are. Time has stopped for them-"
   "I  know,"  I howl. "Don't you understand, Sigfrid? That's the point. I
not only killed her, I'm still killing her!"
   Patiently: "Do you think what you just said is true, Rob?"
   "She  thinks it is! Now, and forever, as long as I live. It's not years
ago  that it happened for her. It's only a few minutes, and it goes on for
all  of  my  life.  I'm  down  here,  getting older, trying to forget, and
there's  Klara  up  there in Sagittarius YY, floating around like a fly in
amber!"
   I  drop to the bare plastic mat, sobbing. Little by little, Sigfrid has
been  restoring  the  whole  office, patching in this decoration and that.
There  are  pinatas  hanging  over  my  head,  and a holopic Lake Garda at
Sirmione on the wall, hoverfloats, sailboats, bathers having fun.
   "Let the pain out, Rob," Sigfrid says gently. "Let it all out."
   "What  do  you think I'm doing?" I roll over on the foam staring at the
ceiling.  "I could get over the pain and the guilt, Sigfrid, if she could.
But for her it isn't over. She's out there, stuck in time."
   "Go ahead, Rob," he encourages.
   "I  am  going  ahead.  Every  second  is still the newest second in her
mind-the  second  when I threw her life away to save my own. I'll live and
get old and die before she lives past that second, Sigfrid."
   "Keep going, Rob. Say it all."
   "She's thinking I betrayed her, and she's thinking it now! I can't live
with that."
   There is a very, very long silence, and at last Sigfrid says:
   "You are, you know."
   "What?" My mind has gone a thousand light-years away.
   "You are living with it, Rob."
   "Do  you call this living?" I sneer, sitting up and wiping my nose with
another of his million tissues.
   "You  respond  very quickly to anything I say, Rob," says Sigfrid, "and
therefore  sometimes  I  think  your response is a counterpunch. You parry
what I say with words. Let me strike home for once, Rob. Let this sink in:
you are living."
   Well, I suppose I am." It is true enough; it is just not very rewarding.
   Another long pause, and then Sigfrid says:
   "Rob.  You  know that I am a machine. You also know that my function is
to  deal  with human feelings. I cannot feel feelings. But I can represent
them  with  models, I can analyze them, I can evaluate them. I can do this
for  you.  I  can even do it for myself. I can construct a paradigm within
which  I  can  assess the value of emotions. Guilt? It is a painful thing;
but  because it is painful it is a behavior modifier. It can influence you
to  avoid guilt-inducing actions, and this is a valuable thing for you and
for society. But you cannot use it if you do not feel it."
   "I do feel it! Jesus Christ, Sigfrid, you know I'm feeling it!"
   "I  know,"  he  says, "that now you are letting yourself feel it. It is
out  in  the  open, where you can let it work for you, not buried where it
can  only harm you. That is what I am for, Rob. To bring your feelings out
where you can use them."
   "Even the bad feelings? Guilt, fear, pain, envy?"
   "Guilt.  Fear. Pain. Envy. The motivators. The modifiers. The qualities
that  I,  Rob,  do not have, except in a hypothetical sense, when I make a
paradigm and assign them to myself for study."
   There  is  another  pause.  I  have a funny feeling about it. Sigfrid's
pauses  are usually either to give me time to let something sink in, or to
permit him to compute some complex chain of argument about me. This time I
think it is me but not about me. And at last he says, "You asked me, Rob."
   "Asked you? What was that?"
   "You  asked  me,  'Do  you  call this living?' And I answer: Yes. It is
exactly  what  I call living. And in my best hypothetical sense, I envy it
very much."
Книго
[X]